aftercare with seungmin đ
in my mind, puppy boy is insatiable in bed (could go for literally hours on end with little rest), so of course, he'd be an absolute aftercare KING.
soft pecks, gentle caresses and careful fondling, quiet praises of how good you did for him, how beautiful you are when you fall apart around him, when you moan his name, when you reach for his warmth and his lips as you shudder in pleasure. he'd mutter how he could never get enough of you as you come down from your highs on your bed, in his hold as he grabs your hand and kisses your fingertips, heated, sweaty chest flush to his.
then, while cleaning your thighs and stomach with a warm, wet rag as the bathtub fills with hot water, your favorite bathbomb and shower gels already in it, he'd crack a few jokes to lighten the mood, making you drowsily chuckle, and his heart grow fonder.
once in the tub, he'll hug you from behind, his legs laying beside yours, rocking you side to side with his lips pressing wet kisses on your shoulders and neck before finally helping you wash your hair, your body, a comfortable silence falling in your bathroom. the gentleness with which he cradles your face and scrubs your body makes you want to cry every time.
he'd insist on blow drying your hair, following your skincare routine to the T, and helping you into your pyjamas before carrying you to bed, tucking you under a fresh set of sheets and duvet, the previous, ruined ones in the washing machine.
then, once the lights are off, he lays chest to chest, arms around you, leg thrown over yours to cage you into his hold, his soft lips resting on your forehead as his hands gently stroke your back and arms and hair, and gosh if you feel safe, so protected, so loved, so warm as you hug him back, as you press kisses to his collarbones and neck and cheeks, every single one a silent thanks for taking care of you, and a silent promise to take care of him in the morning. and needless to say, he falls asleep with a smile tugging at his pretty lips, and so do you, hugging him tighter, tangling your legs with his to gain as much of his warmth as possible.
pairing: young aristocrat hyunjin x f!reader | wc: 32.4k | genre: 19th century au, arranged marriage, romance, smut | warnings: period-appropriate themes & customs including sexuality and beliefs ; virgin!reader ; mutual pining ; slow burn ; heavy angst ; anguish and dark thoughts ; view all compiled warnings here. This work is for adult audiences only. This work portrays explicit sexual content and themes & actions that might trigger some, reader discretion is strongly advised. @cb97percent, dearest, this one's for you.
You had seen a tiger only once in your life but it was quite memorable. It might have been domesticated but it was still the largest cat you had ever seen. You wouldnât forget the look in its eyes as it descended to devour the carcass the circus workers had left for him. A beautiful beast, too thin, locked in a cage. Hyunjin had the same look in his eyes tonight. What a beautiful beast he was, too, only his prison did not have bars.Â
The morning of your thirteenth birthday, you found yourself barefoot on the back porch of your familyâs villa, throwing nuts on the ground for your favorite squirrel. You liked all the squirrels, of course, but this one had a special place in your heart because its tail was missing. Not only did it stand out, but he was also noticeably less dexterous. He moved slowly and rarely reached the same spots as the others that sometimes roamed the property.Â
You named the squirrel Henry. And it wasnât that big of a deal either. It was just that your family could most definitely spare a few nuts here and there and this tiny rodent could use them. It made you smile, though, to see him and his unusual hopping as you went on your days. It gave you a thing to look forward toâand you had very few of those.
You were nervous that your mother would find you here. Like that. Because of Henry and because of other things, too. At that point, it was the second year he spent around the villa and your mother was well aware that you had taken a liking to him. There were things, like Henry, that she tolerated. The beehives, for example. She let you spend some time every other day with the old beekeeper, Mr. Ito, and you had no idea why. She was so strict and unyielding about everything else that it made no sense to allow you something as beautiful as that.Â
Sometimes, you wondered if it was so that you would not hate her. Perhaps she thought that if she let you have the beekeeping and a garden, it would keep you strong for the rest of it. For the endless lessonsâetiquette, manners, dance, embroidery, reading, sewing, singing.Â
In a couple of years, youâd be learning about politicsâa woman, especially not a lady, did not need to be very knowledgeable on the matter, not to the point of forming an opinion about any of it.Â
However, she would need to know enough to entertain some conversation with her husband, and maybe even some of his business partners, while the men sat around a table to discuss such things. A lady would not be at her place sitting at the table but she would be expected to make a brief appearanceâit gave her husband a good reason to show her off, especially if she made one or two witty remarks and was generous on the wine or liquor they drank.Â
Your mother made you write that down. All of her lectures. All of her lessons. She said it made you practice spelling and your calligraphy at once, and that written words are engraved deeper into the memory of girls. In your bedroom there was a large dresser made of cherry wood and one of the drawers was almost full to the brim with sheets of paper. The words your mother made you write down. The standards she expected of you.Â
Like, a lady should know better than anybody how to run her houseâincluding her husband. For that, your mother regularly made you join the staff in their chores. You had learned how to wash, dry, and fold laundry. You had learned how to store food, and how to make preserves. More lessons would come. Your middle drawer was full of loose sheets with everything and anything on them. Recipes for soups or cakes or venison. Lists of the best brands of specific products, from cleaning supplies to liquor. Reputable clothing brands.Â
There were a few songs among those sheets, too. These, you didnât mind. You liked music. Out of all the lessons, singing was your favorite one, partially because it bore your mother enough that she never stayed around for the entirety of it. But also, and most importantly, you were good at it, and music made you feel alive. You stood near the piano while your teachers played, and you sang along while working on your pitch. Sometimes, the teachers even let you play a few notes on the piano.
You often sang to the bees. The hives and Mr. Ito were your usual audience, and they were easy to please. You were too young to execute some of the harvesting steps, Mr. Ito said, but you were welcome to watch as closely as you wanted. He said that you enthralled the bees, that they remained calm when you were around.
The morning of your thirteenth birthday, you woke up before the rest of your family, although you could hear the staff already at work. The night before, it had been Lillie, the Head Housekeeper, who put you to bed. Your parents were hosting a big dinner to celebrate your sisterâs engagement to the son of a wealthy man and you had to be excused from the festivities due to a stomach ache. So it had been Lillie who put you into your sleeping gown and brushed your hair. She pressed warm towels on your belly to make the stomach ache go away. You liked Lillie. She was kind and always treated you with tenderness and love, the way a mother would, the way your mother never had. You only figured the belly ache came from all the stress you had that day, in anticipation of your birthday. It seemed like thirteen was such a big number, even if it was just one more than twelve.
Your sister was seventeen. She and her fiancĂŠ would get married soon after she turned eighteen.
You questioned your mother about that one afternoon. âMother, you said that we would begin our journey to Hwang Estate not before I turned twenty, maybe after.â Already, at your age, you were aware that it was unusual. âWhy is Kimiâs marriage at eighteen, then?âÂ
Your mother liked it when you asked direct questions. âBecause your marriage is more important,â she told you. âWhen he is of age, Lord Hyunjin will become a more powerful man than Mr. Hughes, so I want you to be more prepared. More⌠ripe. When I send you over to him.â
But you had visited the lumberyard owned by the Hughes with the rest of your family. It was huge. The whole place smelled like freshly cut wood, but it was very dusty. When you pointed out to your mother that it looked like this place was rather busy and that it must be important, she shook her head. âHwang Estate is one thing, my daughter. The estate itself is largeâI told you, it is surrounded by a beautiful pine forest. But the Hwangs own the land beyond that forest, too. More acres than your brain can comprehend without seeing it. There are farms on it. He also owns a factory.âÂ
In any case. You werenât exactly sure you understood what importance was, not in the context related by your mother. Because to you, none of these things were important. Not the size of the Hughesâ lumberyard, not the size of Hyunjinâs estate or the farms around it. To you, all that mattered was that one day, you would go over there and get married to your friend. Your only friend.
You turned thirteen today.Â
That morning, you woke up with something sticky and warm between your legs. For the first few seconds you assumed you peed the bed, which seemed properly impossible, and yet. Then, after frantically pushing the covers off you, you found yourself in a small puddle of your own blood. You stared at it for a long time, tears running down your face. You tore the sheets off the bed and realized that it had stained the mattress, too, but you wiped it as well as you could and put fresh covers back on. Nobody would guess, and your bed wasnât due for a change for two more days, so it would give you time.Â
It was too soon. You had been told to expect it a few years from now.
Your mother had prepared you for that day. The day you would become a woman. You knew what that entailed. Your mother had prepared you for that, tooâthe consequences of it all. The monthly bleeds were part of the cycle that would allow you to have a baby inside you one day. It would be Lord Hyunjin who would put it there. The baby. And your mother had taught you all about that too, saying that Lord Hyunjin was like a gardener. He would plant his seed inside you on the days when you did not bleed out of your entrance. She called it like that. An entranceâa garden.Â
The act is a lot more pleasurable for men than it is for women, she also said. They sometimes have special demands or requestsâit is expected of you to comply. You are pretty, you are young, you are a maiden, and the most precious thing you have is this purity that you keep between your legs, that your husband is waiting to break. For this reason, it is expected of you to keep your garden unsullied until your husband plants his seed inside it.
Unsullied.Â
But that morning, you washed yourself up and hid your soiled clothes underneath your bed with the bedsheets. You shoved your least favorite cotton shirt into your undergarments and put another nightgown back onâthis way, nobody would know what happened. You needed time to process.
You had never had much of it. Freedom. But from the moment your mother would find out you were bleeding from between your legs, you would have none.
You hated the feeling of it. The dampness, the sharp pain, the nausea spells taking over you. But you stayed outside nonetheless because you were waiting for the mail.Â
Your heart jumped at the mere thought of it. If you were lucky enough, you would be able to intercept Mr. Greeneâthe villaâs Head Stewardâbefore he brought the mail back into his office, and he would give you Hyunjinâs letter.Â
Year after year, it was the only thing you ever looked forward to. Your birthday, and the words Hyunjin sent you.Â
However, that morning, it wasnât the mail that you intercepted, but rather a conversation between your parents. They hadnât seen you on the back porch because the curtains of the parlor were drawn, but one of the windows had been left open to let some fresh air in. It very soon became obvious that you werenât supposed to hear that conversation at all but you could not move without the risk of the creaking of planks to betray you.Â
âAre you seriously going to refuse Lord Groverâs offer?â your mother scolded in a tone that was usually reserved for you. âAn Earl, Ian! An Earl! Are you out of your damn mind?âÂ
A silence followed during which you heard your father let out a long, tired sigh. âWe made a promise and I intend on keeping it,â he said in the end. âIâm a man of honor.â
âYou may be a man of honor, but Hwang is no longer of this world to complain about a broken promise,â your mother retorted with disdain. âBecause he had no honor at all and it caused his demise. Do you really want your daughter to marry into that family?â
Your heart sank to your stomach as your brain was working at inhuman speed to process everything you were hearing. You may have been only thirteen, but you werenât stupidâyou knew what this conversation was implying. You knew of Hyunjinâs father and the shame he had brought on his familyâHyunjin had sent a letter that year, telling you he would understand if you no longer wished to marry him. But to you, his fatherâs wrongdoings meant nothing.Â
Because it was him that you liked. Hyunjin. And you knew he wasnât like that, like his father. You knew from the letters he sent, and because you were very much unlike your mother.Â
âI want our family to be able to keep its head held high,â your father said. âIt would bring dishonor to us if we were to annul the betrothal. What Hwang did doesnât change the fact that our daughter will marry into a wealthy, comfortable life, and we still keep our word.â
âYour word. It was your word, not mine.â Your mother clicked her tongue. âI donât think it would bring us dishonor at all. I donât think the Hwang boy would have much trouble finding himself a wife. With his motherâs connections, he could probably marry some royal relative, even. For all we know, itâs what heâs going to do anyway. Heâs getting older now, an orphan, and heâs responsible for himself. Whoâs to say he wonât wed some girl and impregnate her, completely disregarding our arrangement?âÂ
You pressed your hand over your mouth to muffle the sound of your sobs, which you could not control. The inside of your body felt cold like a winter day. You felt so little all of a sudden. Insignificant. Stupid. Unsightly. Revolting. With blood sticking to your thighs and tears rolling your face and your hair tangled and unwashed, with the scent of nuts and corn on your fingers after feeding Henry.Â
She was right, your mother.Â
Hyunjin was your friend. Your only friend. He was all that you had and you didnât even have him yet. He was kind and sweet in the letters he sent you, but nothing about it promised you a happy marriage to him or a marriage at all. Even if he said he couldnât wait for you to come live with him.Â
He was reaching an age where boys wanted certain things and thought a lot about girls and their gardens.Â
âThe exact same could be said about Theodore,â your father retorted. âHe could impregnate two or three princesses by the time our daughter is of age.âÂ
TheodoreâLord Groverâs son. You did not know him but he and his parents had been guests for the dinner last night, their family being close with the Hughes. It was an honor, your mother said, to host an Earl and his family for a meal, and it had been why she had been so quick to send you away last night when you felt ill. Sheâd rather you disappear than embarrass her with your childish pain, which, in the end, had been caused by something that was anything but childish.Â
He was sitting a few seats down from you during dinnerâhe had been seated by your mother, not too far from your brother. Surely, she wanted him to become friends with the future earl. Theodore was a tall boy of almost twenty years old, with dark eyes and chestnut-brown hair that had a touch of cinnamon in it, which you could only assume came from his mother, whose hair was the color of copper. He was very outgoing and talked to everybody with just the right amount of respect and politeness expected of him. He was handsome even, in the way a boy his age could be. Not quite a man yet but no longer a child.
âHe wouldnât do that! Heâll be an earl,â your mother insisted. âDonât you want your daughter to marry an earl?âÂ
You could no longer control yourselfâthe nausea hit you so hard you became dizzy and fell to your knees. You cried, just waiting for the lightheadedness to pass, unable to help your sobs. The pain in your lower abdomen was so sharp it felt like a knife but the pain in your heart was sharper. You didnât want any of that. You wanted Hyunjin. You had known all your life that you would be his wife someday. And you didnât want it any other way.
âWhat is this?â You heard your mother as she approached the nearest window. You couldnât stand in time, but you managed to wipe some of your tears and your mouth before her face appeared through the glass.Â
A strange expression, one that you had never seen on her, appeared on her face. It crept up slowly, almost like she was resisting it. Your father appeared by her sideâyou heard him talk to her in a very irritated voice but couldnât make out the words as you were too taken up by the mere effort of stopping your cries. Your mother hated it when you cried.Â
She stormed outside but by the time she was on the porch, you had run away, not minding the destination. All that you wanted was to go far from here. You wanted to be yesterday when you werenât a woman yet. You wanted to be years from now when you wouldnât live here anymore but on a pretty estate surrounded by a pine forest.
If Hyunjin wanted you at all.Â
Your mother caught up with you when you tripped over a rock and fell face-first into the soft grass growing around the property. The soil absorbed most of the shock but none of your shame or your sorrow.Â
âGet up! Someone will see you!â She grabbed at your gown, attempting to pull you up. âWhat have I told you about eavesdropping? What have Iââ
Her sentence was cut short when she saw blood in the process of tugging at your gown. It left her speechless long enough for you to stand on your own and escape her grip. âI donât want to marry him,â you managed through your tears, but it was difficult to speak with how tight your throat was. âPlease, Mother. Not him, not Lord Groverâs son,â you begged, and you had never begged before in your life. âPlease, Mother, I donât love him, I donât want to, please, pleaseââ
She raised a hand in the air and used it to strike you in the face hard enough that you almost lost your balance again. It effectively caused you to stop crying as you stared at her, bewildered. It wasnât the first time you got a strike to the face, but it had never been this hard before. The pain spread underneath your skin like spilled ink on paper.Â
There were tears in her eyes, but that happened when she was really angry. âHow dare you speak to me like this! How dare you show yourself in such a way when we have guests in our home!âÂ
The sting became an ache on your cheek. You knew it would become red and swollen, which meant you would spend the next several days locked in your room, away from prying eyes.
âYouâre not worthy of the Grovers, clearly,â your mother commented with disdain. âThe wife of an Earl does not act like a spoiled child.â She scoffed. âI doubt they will retain their marriage offer after they hear of your little tantrum.âÂ
You did not know what kind of life you would live. But if you ever had a child, you would not hit them, not even if they misbehaved.
âYou said I was going to marry Hyunjin,â you muttered, averting your gaze. âHeâs my friend.â
âFriend? Heâs your friend?â She lowered herself to look at you from up close. âYou know, they say he has his fatherâs demons in his eyes.âÂ
âNo,â you said. Then, âI donât care. I love him.âÂ
Your mother broke into a burst of hysterical laughterâit echoed in the quiet morning. You noticed Henry nearby, alarmed by the sound, scuttling away.Â
âMother,â you murmured. âPlease, stop.â She looked scary. You just wanted to return to your room. âPlease. Stop.âÂ
She didnât stop yetâinstead, the laughter slowed down, punctuated by deep breaths. She wiped a tear from the corner of her eye, following your gaze. âWere you feeding that vermin again? What did I tell you about this?âÂ
âHeâs not vermin! Heâs⌠heâs my friend.â Henry had reached a tall oak tree and disappeared among the branches.Â
âHeâs your friend,â your mother repeated, her eyes filling with angry tears again. âLet me guess. You love him, too? Have you ever had a fondness for something whole? Why is it that whenever you love something, itâs broken, or crippled?â
She grabbed you by the nape of your neck and dragged you back home, lecturing you about the responsibilities of a girl who became a woman and how you had to be stronger than this, stronger than your willingness to help out a squirrel that didnât have a tail, stronger than the strange feeling brought by your first bleeding. You had to be stronger than those stupid little childish feelings of yours. âYouâre a fool for loving him, child.â
The year you turned thirteen, your mother was so angry at youâor at your father, or bothâthat she did not allow you to read Hyunjinâs letter. She burned it in front of your eyes, and if a gift had come with it, she never told you. âYou will learn to behave like a woman. Like a lady,â she said as the paper turned to ashes. âYou could have been the wife of an earl, but instead you will be the wife of a deranged man. Maybe he will be despised by allâmaybe that is what you want. To be stained by him.âÂ
He was all that you had. Hyunjin. He was all that you ever wanted, because all this time, he had been the only thing that made you feel like a person and not a lump of clay to be fashioned into something. And you loved himâas broken as he might be.
The sky was blue and clear and the air was cool, the breeze carrying the scent of fall with it. The grass you lay upon was cool too, but soft and comfortable, heating up slowly under the sun as the day advanced. There was nothing around except for the pine forest on one side and a secluded corner of the lake on the other. You could hear the gentle waves flapping on the shore. You heard a few birds, too.Â
The scene may have been beautiful and serene, but it was the last thing on your mind at the moment.
Hyunjin, your Hyunjin, towering over you, his shirt half-unbuttoned and his hair undone, occupied every molecule of your brain, of your soul. He looked like a feral thing like that, but perhaps it was just because you couldnât wait to feel him even more.
âOpen your legs for me darling, will you?âÂ
His voice echoed through you like an earthquake, starting from your scalp, running all the way to your extremities, but not without coating your core with something warm and heavy. Your lips were raw and swollen from the past hour spent kissing him. On the mouth, in his neck. His hands, his jaw.Â
You locked eyes with your husband. You never wanted to look at anything but him. He was the most beautiful thing you had ever seen.Â
His fingers dug themselves deeper into the plush flesh of your thighs, waiting, eager. He didnât need to ask you to do itâif Hyunjin wanted, he could open your legs at any moment he wished. He was stronger than you were, and you wouldnât resist him anyway.
But he liked asking. And you liked it when he asked. When he begged.
His honey skin was warm, warm enough that you did not feel the wind. You only felt him. And his hands on your thighs, so close to your pussy that you swore he could feel how wet you were.
Slowly, you parted open your legs, just for him, and met no resistance. Hyunjinâs expression changed, turning grave and contemplative as he watched. As you offered yourself to him.
He bit his lower lip. âOh,â he murmured, his voice low, evoking the same honey as his skin. âBaby, youâre soakedâŚâ
You would never get used to it.Â
Hyunjin lowered himself between your legs, wasting no time before he left wet kisses over your thighs, holding you still. He had hitched up your skirt a while ago already and the contrast between his body and the cool air gave you goosebumps.Â
It never quite felt real. When he touched you. When he held you. When he looked you in the eyes and called you darling, at any time of the day. You kept waiting for the moment youâd wake up from this dream and return to reality where Hyunjin avoided you like the plague. Yet, months passed, and it never came, allowing you to make a home out of this dream-like life you were in.Â
You did awaken in the morning but the dream kept on going because you were in your lord husbandâs bed and his arms were usually wrapped around your body. If they werenât, you were holding him, and if you werenât, he was pressed so close to you that you could feel him, all of him, over all of you. His scent, masculine yet delicate, now lingered on you always, following you wherever you went like a reminder of his love.Â
You liked it. When you woke up like that, in Hyunjinâs bed, his hard, straining cock pressed on your lower back. You liked it so much that you usually made a point of not waking him up to make the moment last longer. You let it permeate you like ink on paper. Like red wine on white silk. Keeping your eyes closed, you usually registered every little detail you could. Where his hands were. The rhythm of his breathing. His pulse. The little sleepy noises spilling from his lips.Â
But came a time when it was no longer enough, when your soaked pussy ached for him in a way that could not be put into words. Sometimes you woke him up by taking him into your mouth. You liked it so much. His deep, bitter taste, stronger in the morning. His musky scent. You rarely felt as connected to him as when his heartbeat pulsed through his cock onto your tongue. He watched attentively as you sucked him off, as you massaged his balls just the way you knew he liked. You loved feeling him resist the urge to fuck your throatâthe restrained thrusts, the whimpers, his fist in your hair.Â
Sometimes, heâd tell you that he loved you as he emptied himself in your mouth, and you were certain that this was as close as youâd ever get to a miracle.
This morning, it had been Hyunjin who was up before you. He woke you up with a kiss on your bare shoulder, pulling you back against him. âLetâs have breakfast by the lake, darling, while the weather still allows it.â Some trees were losing their green and turning yellowâyou knew that soon, what wasnât a pine or a spruce would be bright orange or red, and that days would be cold, and nights even colder.Â
This was Hyunjinâs secret place, he called it. It was quite a walk from the manor but worth every minute of it. It was private and comfortable and pretty. He liked being with you here.
He liked eating your pussy here.
Your breakfastâfresh bread, cheese, and autumn strawberries was left untouched in the basket you carried it in. Hyunjin had decided he wanted to feast on something else.Â
You shuddered when his hot breath caressed your glistening folds, but you arched into him when he used one of his hands to part your pussylips open. You never reacted gently to himâevery little contact felt like a thousand kisses, or a thousand little flames, or both at once.Â
Heat rushed to your core when Hyunjin gave your pussy three kisses. One on your mons, one on your entrance, and lastly one directly onto your clit. You moaned, biting into your fist, knowing that you were out of sight but not necessarily out of earshot.Â
âDarling.â He did not need to say anything moreâone word, this one word, was worth a lifetime of waiting.Â
Hyunjin gave your cunt a few tentative, bashful kitten licks, moaning when your taste melted on his tongue. He accentuated the pressure he applied by bobbing his head, licking and lapping at you.Â
Your hand found his hair. So that you could anchor yourself to something. So that you could keep it there, right there, and rub yourself all over his face. âYes, yes, yesâŚâ Your voice was no more than a desperate whine. Hyunjin responded by moaning louder into your cunt, reacting to how needy you were.Â
âMy darling wife,â he murmured, pulling away just a little to breathe. He looked at you from there, his gaze piercing and heavy, his pink, pillowy lips coated with your slick. âYou become such a wild thing when you get your pretty pussy eaten, donât you?â
You clenched at that, at the sound of his voice, at his hooded eyes. Propping yourself on your elbow to make sure youâd see as much as you could, you watched as Hyunjin returned to your folds, licking at you with fervor, as though he was running out of time, or patience. It was sloppy, and the sounds of his mouth as he tasted you were making you dizzy.Â
He slurped and slurped, his smooth tongue running all over your folds before he lingered at your entrance, teasing you, then pushing it within you. A stronger wave of pleasure took over you every time. And he knew it. Hell, you could feel his pleased smile against your pussy as he fucked you with his tongue in long, slow licks, savoring you, swallowing every drop of you that he could. It was too much. It wasnât enough.Â
You wanted him in every way one could have somebody. If it had been possible, you would have woven your soul to his so that the two of you were never apart. He belonged there. Between your legs. In your heart.
And you belonged there too, in his embrace, in his heart. You belonged to him.
You wanted him. To feel him, to feel him against you. You tugged at his hair and yet Hyunjin did not budgeâhe moved from your hole to your clit, flicking his tongue gently all over it, bringing you closer to the edge. You moaned with your mouth wide open, your voice echoing over the lake, disappearing into the pine forest. You moaned again, louder, pulling harder at your husbandâs silky hair so that he would come find you here. âPlease,â you pleaded, your face contorted with pleasure and impatience alike.Â
He was handsome in the purest way possible. In the most sinful, depraved way. His mouth remained agape as he caught his breath, his lips and cheeks and chin wet with your juices. His breath smelled like your cunt. Some of his hair stuck to his templesâyou pushed it behind his ear as you caressed his flushed cheek.Â
He was so hardâhis trousers did very little to conceal the bulge his cock formed in them. He rubbed himself onto your cunt, staining his pants with your cream.Â
You took his face in both of your hands, pulling him into a kiss. He took your lips and kissed you hard with his pussy-infused mouth. You loved your own taste, especially like this. He whispered your name and you breathed it in, whispering his in return.Â
Hooking your knees on his waist, you rolled Hyunjin until he was on his back and you straddled him. He was even more beautiful like this, sprawled onto the soft grass, lips swollen, the tent in his pants beckoning you. You took no time pulling his pants down, exposing his length. Finally.
You loved his cock. You just loved it. The way it looked. The way it tasted, the way it smelled. The way it felt under your tongue or in your hand or anywhere else on your body. You wrapped your hand around his base, eliciting a hiss from Hyunjin, his head falling back to rest on the ground.Â
You loved your husband, you loved his cock. And you wanted him badly. You wanted him in ways he would never take youâhow often did you desperately rub your clit at the thought of him fucking you? Of him claiming you by stuffing your tight cunt with his cock, filling you with his cum? You often wondered what it felt like. To be made whole by your husbandâs seed, dripping slowly out of your fucked out hole after he was done with you.Â
He throbbed in your palm. You secured yourself on top of him, guiding his cock at your pussy but not at your entrance. He moaned when you coated it with your creamy slick, grunting at the sensation of his smooth, hot cock rubbing onto your soaked pussy. He touched it, grazing his fingertips on the places where his length touched you, your pussy, the soft, pillowy skin there. One morning you woke up to him sketching you, using his dominant hand to draw you naked on his bed and the other to stroke his leaking cock. He refused to let you touch himâyou werenât to move, he was drawing you. To practice. He really wanted to learn. He drew you well, down to your slick sticking to the soft trimmed hair of your pussy. And then he made you cum with his tongue two times, and he blew his load all over your face just to watch it drip onto your tits.Â
You loved him. You rubbed your soaked pussy all over his length, using him the same way you sometimes used a pillow to relieve your urges. He was so hard. God, so hard. For you. Just for you.Â
He tugged at the shirt you were wearing, undoing enough buttons to free your tits. He kissed them, he caressed them, he twisted your nipples until he felt your pussy throb at that.Â
His eyelids fluttered when you found your rhythm, rutting against him with your hips rolling in ample waves. âBabyââ he let out with a strangled voice. âUse me. Like that.âÂ
And you were using him a little. Once you felt his cock, nothing could stop you. It drove you crazy when he was this hard, when he was looking at you as if you were the most beautiful thing in the world. It just felt so good. Him, there, between your folds, throbbing against your clit. You leaned over to kiss him again, harder this time, your tongue following the same tempo as your hips. You knew that Hyunjin would cum soon because his breathing was shallow,because his fingers were digging themselves into your waist.Â
You were close too. You wanted to appreciate the moment, the feeling of your cunt on him, your slick dripping onto him, but your mind kept wandering to your most profound desires. You wondered what it would feel like if you were riding him like that but with his cock inside you. How deep it would reach.Â
You could. Fuck, you could guide him inside you right nowâyou were so wet it couldnât possibly be difficult for him to stretch you open, but youâd love it if it hurt. You wanted it to hurt. You wanted Hyunjin to drill into you. You wanted him to use you, to fuck you so hard it brought tears to your eyes. You wanted to be used and loved and fucked by him.Â
The ripples of pleasure in your core became waves and then a monsoonâsurging from within, warm and intoxicating. You could no longer control your moans as they spilled from your lips in loud, staccato breaths. You moved faster, rubbing yourself harder on Hyunjinâs cock, like an animal would. It was too good, too warm, too wetâyou couldnât hold yourself up. Collapsing onto his chest as you chased your high, you buried your face into his neck. Just fuck me just give me your cock⌠please please I want you to cum inside meâ
You realized you were speaking out loud when Hyunjin put his hands on your arms, pulling you away so that he could look you in the eyes.
You had never seen this look on his face before. A glare. Something worse.Â
For a secondâjust a secondâhe frightened you. Like he was a lion and you were a gazelle in the moments before he ripped your throat open. And yet you did not love him, or want him, any less because of it.
His grip on you tightened and before you knew it, you found yourself pinned on the ground underneath him, his cock dangerously close to your hole. You couldnât move. You could barely breathe underneath the weight of him, dazed from the manhandling.
Time came to a stop. Hyunjin took in the sight of you and you of him. A strand of hair fell in front of his face. You could hear nothing except your own panting. His hand rose slowly and he reached for you. It looked, almost, like he was going to caress your cheek.Â
Instead, he grabbed your face, holding you like that. He spoke to you then, his voice low, more a snarl than a sentence. âStop. Fucking. Tempting. Me.â He gave one powerful thrust, his length buried not into your hole but within your folds as he rubbed himself onto you so hard it made you sink into the soil a little.Â
Sparks ran under your skinâyou were too close to the edge, trapped underneath Hyunjinâs weight. Your eyes rolled back. âPlease,â you heard yourself say but your mind was being separated from your body, your consciousness leaving you. âPlease,â you said again, fire taking over your insides, your cunt dripping. It didnât matter. Nothing mattered. Not that he scared you. Not the ache in the places where his hand held you in place. For an instant, you wondered if the imprint of his fingers would remain on the skin of your face.
Hyunjin let out a noise that was something between a growl and a moan. âI know.â His face was flushed and angry and beautiful. He held your face still as he kissed you hungrily, as his rutting became erratic. âGive it to me, just cum, just fucking cum.â
Something sank within youâan ache spread from your lower back to your pussy under the relentless rubbing of Hyunjinâs cock onto your clit. Your hips stuttered as your release finally reached you and you dissolved into pleasure, moaning uncontrollably. You arched onto Hyunjin and he was all over youâbiting your neck, your shoulder, the soft flesh of your breasts. His free hand was groping and squeezing you everywhere while the other forced you to look at him while you came.Â
The flutters of your pussy reached his cock in shockwavesâhe throbbed so hard that you felt it, and his expression changedâhis fury melted as deep, low moans escaped from his parted mouth, and you did not think he could really see you, not with his eyes glazed over like that. He was murmuring words that you could not make out, and as your aftershocks hit you, he flooded your mons and your inner thighs with his cum, hips bucking as he emptied himself all over you. It was so wet, so lewd, that it prolonged your orgasm almost painfully as you clenched around nothing, your vision blurred.Â
Hyunjin collapsed onto you, spent, finally letting go of your face. The ghost of his grip remained as your bliss faded. You slid your hands under his unbuttoned shirt, embracing him like that. You gave his temple a little kiss. Then another. His cock was softening, locked between your two bodies, resting on your lower stomach.Â
Shame took over you. Like ink on paper. Like red wine on white silk.Â
Lips trembling, you caressed Hyunjinâs thick, soft hair. âIâm sorry,â you whispered, your voice evading you.Â
He said nothing and it made you want to disappear. You had come to realize that Hyunjinâs silence was far worse than his rage.Â
âIâm sorry Hyunjin,â you repeated.Â
He pulled himself off you but his face was turned away so that you could not see him. And you felt so little then, so stupid, laying half-naked on the grass, your cunt sticky with your husbandâs cum.Â
âIâm soââ
When you went to apologize for a third time, he did turn to you thenâhis expression was solemn and he silenced you with one look. Then he gave you a kiss, a soft one.Â
âDonât,â he spoke against your lips before kissing you again. âPlease, darling, donât.âÂ
He reached for one of the handkerchiefs you had put into the basket along with the breakfast. It was one of those you had embroidered with Ha-ri and her daughters, an activity you found a lot of enjoymentâand peaceâin. It had little bees on it, with Hyunjinâs name just below.
He used it to wipe his cum off you. You flinchedâbeing caressed by him could never leave you unfazed, not even in this situation. You were still sensitive from his licking, his rubbing, from him. Your handsome lord husband, the only thing you had ever wanted.Â
The only thing that could make you soar as high as a bird and fall as hard as the coldest downpour. He was much like a storm, with violent winds, with darkening skies, with menacing thunder. Beautiful and intriguing enough that you wholeheartedly ran outside, bare and uncovered, and let the rain drown you one or a hundred times.
He said nothingâhe left you there as he rose, buttoning his trousers back up and making his way to the lake so he could rinse out the handkerchief. His hair floated in the breeze and a couple of ducks floated by, their quacks echoing over the water. The pleasure between your legs mutated into something elseâyou were sore, and the cool weather was affecting you a whole lot more without Hyunjinâs body to warm you up. You brought your knees close to your chest, hugging your legs as you sat there, watching your husband ignore you.
You realized now the mistake you had madeâit wasnât even that you lost control today and said certain things. It was that a few months ago, after the whole ordeal at Lord Jeonâs place, you and Hyunjin hadnât really talked. Not about this. Never about the specifics of it. He ate your pussy often, and you rubbed or sucked his cock just as often. Heâd say things like careful there, itâs going to leak after he spilled himself a little too close to your entrance. But then heâd usually just lick his cum off you, and it normally ended with you having a second or third orgasm, so you werenât going to complain.Â
He showed the affection he had for you, not just in bed. He was visibly more comfortable around you. Heâd often say that he loved you. Heâd make little surprises for youâflowers picked around the property, more thread for your embroidery, or a freshly painted scene he made for you.Â
He called you darling. Almost all of the time now. Even around others. You still remembered the first time he did so in the daytime with an audienceâyou were visiting the Bangs, whose property was on the other side of the lake, for Lady Bangâs birthday celebration. It had been a small, intimate affairâunfortunately, Lady Bangâs health issues had been making her life more difficult, but she seemed to enjoy her birthday anyway. Changbin and Ha-ri were there as well as Lord Han and his wife, who was also rather close with the Bangs.Â
The celebration began outside with light snacks and beverages. You were having tea with the other women while the men were a little farther, standing by the lake and discussing real estateâa topic that bored Hyunjin to death, so you knew he would try to divert it sooner rather than later. You had become accustomed to itâno more than that, you loved it. This little habit of his. When he came to you to help make his current conversationâbusiness or notâmore interesting.
Darling, heâd said from across the yard, his voice loud enough that youâand everyone elseâheard him. What are those plants that grow by the water on our side of the lake? The ones that smell so good? Iâm trying to convince Lord Han that he wants some for his new cottage home.
The fragrant herb grew naturally in a few places on Hwang Estate, its scent made stronger on days where it rained right before the sun warmed up the earth. You remembered warmth spreading on your cheeks as you fumbled with your wordsâand your needle. Mugwort, my love, you replied, and Hyunjin raised his cup of coffee at you with a smile before turning to the others again. You remembered even more the lightness in your chest and Lady Bangâs knowing smile. Ha-riâs, too. Not a word had been said about it, except for Lady Bangâs gentle remark, Your husband seems healthy these days, Lady Hwang. It looks like having you around is good for him. You look well, too.
So you knew that what had happened at the Jeonsâ place had done something to soften his heart. Except you had thought that it was open. And that it would keep opening over time, like the petals of a flower unfurling slowly under the sun as spring became summer.Â
But you realized now that instead of opening, his heart had cracked openâjust enough to let some of his love trickle out and spill, to allow some of his light to warm you up, but not enough that he would ever be yours. Not in the way you wanted him to be. And it went so far beyond the act of him putting his cock inside your pussy. It was the thought behind it, his will to never, ever do so was a symptom, a manifestation of something that was festering within him. Like one who had the flu would have a fever and a coughâhe recoiled if the tip of his cock even grazed your entrance.Â
Or at the sight of a newborn baby, an event that happened two weeks ago in town when a motherâthe wife of a farmer who worked on his landsâapproached him to present him her daughter. A beautiful little girl, soundly asleep in her motherâs arms, all pretty and snug in a bundle of blankets. He barely acknowledged the woman before running away, leaving you with her. You had been more than happy to chat with her and to praise the little angel in her arms, but when she asked if you wanted to hold her, you realized that you just couldnât. You froze in place, finding yourself unable to take the baby in your arms.Â
Like a manifestation of something festering inside you. A testimony of everything you didnât have, and never would.
That morning, as the autumn breeze caressed your hair and the places where your skirt did not cover your legs, as you watched your husband soak a cum-stained handkerchief in the lake, you thought of your mother. And of all the ways in which she had warned you.
She had been right all along. Your heart was drawn toward anything that was broken, and the worst part was that you couldnât help it at all. Out of all the wretched, damaged things you had loved, though, Hyunjin was by far your favorite.Â
Hyunjin helped you up when he came back. It seemed that his hand lingered on your forearm a little longer than he needed it to, but perhaps it was just your imagination.Â
He did not say a word, not one word, as you walked back to the manor. He disappeared into his bedroom, locking the door behind him. You knew he would wash up before joining Changbin and others in the parlor, where they would hold a meeting about Hyunjinâs upcoming business trip. In the city.
Some things just never changed. You hated it, still, when he left for that place where he used to be so acquainted with the brothels.Â
Some things just never changed. You had been a fool for loving him before, and a fool you still were.
That day, Ahnjong came to help you with your bath and your gown but you refused herâyou told your maid that you were feeling sick, that your stomach was a little upset, and that you wished to rest for a few more hours. She believed you, mentioning that she had seen the breakfast return completely whole after your walk with Hyunjin.Â
You did batheâin water so warm that it burned your skin. Yet it was not enough to cleanse the shame off you.Â
You only went outside in the afternoon to check on your beehives. With winter approaching, they werenât very active and no longer produced enough honey for you to harvest it. Instead, you just made sure that everything was clean and in order so that they could keep getting ready for the cold season. You envied them. They could not know it, but their setbacks would be temporary. The snow and the ice would thaw and spring would bring with it new flowers and warmth for them to enjoy. But for you, it seemed, the cold would be everlasting.Â
When Ha-ri mentioned she was going to visit the town for a few errands, you immediately asked to join her. Just to put some distance between you and Hwang Estate. Between you and Hyunjin. You hadnât even seen him after returning home and yet you needed to be away.Â
âMy lady,â Ha-ri said, keeping her voice low to make sure that the coachman wouldnât hear her. âWhat is troubling you like that?âÂ
You kept your head turned toward the small window, watching the scenery outside. The soft, green grass, the trees and their coloring, the clouds floating in the sky. It was all too beautifulâit did not make sense to be witnessing it when your heart was in such a state of disarray.Â
Not giving her an answer would be worse. You took a deep breath, and as you did, the feeling of Hyunjinâs rage came back to you. His firm grip. And you, the stupid fool who did not want to escape it, who relished every moment of it.Â
âIt always worries me when our husbands leave for more than a day or two,â you responded. âYou know that, Ha-ri.â
She leaned over so she would be a little closer to you, observing you. âIs that really it?âÂ
âYes.â You nodded, turning to her. She was studying your face carefully, looking for hints that you were hiding something from her. You could only hope that all of your motherâs lessons hadnât been useless, that you could still make your face tell something other than what was in your heart.Â
Ha-ri sat back on her bench, crossing her arms over her chest with a frown on her brow. She did not believe you. âChangbin came to see me during a recess. He told me that Lord Hwang was particularly short-tempered today.âÂ
You ran your tongue over your teeth, inhaling as if to give yourself some time to think this all over. Ha-ri was a friend now, a true friend. The kind of friend you never had except for Hyunjin through his letters when you grew up. She knew a lot about the things that went on between you and your husband. She knew enough to properly humiliate both of you if she ever wished, but you knew sheâd never do such a thing. You knew you could trust Ha-ri with your secrets. She didnât even tell them to her husband.Â
A heavy silence fell between the two of you. Ha-ri was, also, the kind of sister you never had, despite having been brought up in a household with two of them.
You felt tears in your eyes as you were choosing your words. You didnât even know what to say to her, and yet you couldnât possibly not tell her. You would go crazy if you didnât. It seemed like you couldnât see ahead, like you were stuck in the middle of a field on a foggy day, and you didn't know where to go to reach home.Â
When Ha-ri caught sight of your tears, she covered her mouth in surprise before handing you a handkerchief. This one was also one that you had decorated with her, and the sight of it was enough to make the tears roll down your cheeks. You hid behind your hands as you wept.Â
âOh, my ladyâŚâ She put her hand on your thigh, patting you there gently. Lovingly. âYou donât have to tell meâI think I know anywayâŚâ She pushed a strand of hair away from your face and you removed your hands to look at her.Â
She was rightâyou didnât need to tell her, because she knew it was about Hyunjin, and also probably guessed it had something to do with the distance he insisted on keeping between you and him.Â
So, that afternoon, Ha-ri brought you with her on her errands, making sure to occupy the silences when they went on for too long, talking about this and that. Nothing too interesting and nothing too boring either. She decided, on the spot, that she would be making new dresses for you for the winter and made you choose your fabrics and colors. Ha-ri was a good friend, and you only felt worse for not being comforted by all her efforts. As though you didnât deserve herâand maybe you didnât. Maybe you didnât deserve any of this.Â
Your mind was too busy with memories from the morning to properly appreciate Ha-riâs friendly chat as she explained to you her ideas for the dresses she wished to make. In your mind, all that existed was Hyunjin and his fingers sinking into the delicate skin of your face, his weight on your body, keeping you pinned down on the soft soil. His skin hot and feverish and his beautiful face contorted with fear and resentment. And lust. And love.
After the fabrics, Ha-ri informed you that she needed to stop by the Apothecary to replenish her stash of fever curesâshe knew that in the winter months, her little girls would surely need some, and let you know that she always hoarded as much as she could during the fall. You made a few purchases yourself, a little distractedly, mostly to reassure Ha-ri. To give the impression that you werenât in fact hearing in your mind Hyunjinâs feral groans as he aggressively rubbed his cock on your pussy. Like he couldnât resist it. Like he wanted to be done with itâwith youâas quickly as possible.Â
You thanked the apothecary and followed Ha-ri outside, answering her questions about honey even though both of you were very much aware that she already knew how beneficial honey could be for a sore throat or even a light cough. Â
She was already seated when you stopped in your tracks, your gaze going blank as you went to climb back into the coach. Suddenly, it was no longer Hyunjin's desperate release you were thinking of, it was Lee Minho.Â
And a promise you made to himâand your husbandâseveral months ago already.Â
âIâll be right back, Ha-ri,â you heard yourself say. You even felt a smile appear on your lips. And you knew it was convincing by the face your friend made when you spoke to her. âI forgot somethingâsome oils, for my hair.âÂ
Of course she believed you and it made you feel like you were the worst person alive, taking advantage of Ha-riâs good heart.
âMy lady,â the apothecary, an older gentleman, said when you reentered his shop. He had just concluded a quick sale with a young man who had been waiting in line after Ha-ri and yourself. âIs there a problem with your purchases?âÂ
You had always been burdened by the thing between your legs, whether it was about the bleeding or the piece of flesh inside you, the one that you so badly wanted to keep whole so that Hyunjin could claim you. You remembered the day you became a woman and the feeling of the blood dripping from you, the smell of it, too. It had been so violent, especially for a child of that age. And yet, you had come to see it as a blessing. Every month, your body reminded you that one day, it would welcome within it Hyunjinâs heir.
But that was before knowing it would never be the case.
âNo, no, there isnât a problem,â you replied, crossing the small room to meet the old man at the counter. âIâve forgotten something that Iâd like to buy, if you have it in your possession, of course.âÂ
This seemed to unsettle the apothecary a little. He tilted his head to the side, raising an eyebrow. âWhat do you mean, my lady?âÂ
You took a deep breath but that did very little to stop your lips from trembling. âCan I trust that our conversation will remain private?â When the man went to respond, you raised a hand, insisting. âTruly private. At any cost,â you added. âYou may not tell my lord husband, or the doctor in our employment, or anybody.â
The apothecaryâs gaze lingered on you for a few seconds, then he bowed his head low. âOf course, my lady. I am at your service.âÂ
Maybe you trusted him, maybe you didnâtâthe truth was that in the grand scheme of things, it didnât matter. It didnât matter because you simply wanted to have a bottle or two of it in your possession just in case. Perhaps it could be some sort of safety net. A hail mary.Â
It was Sookie who told you about it, many years ago. At the time, it had appeared to you as one of the highest offenses, as one of the worst things a woman could do. But Sookie had insisted that you would understand one dayâyou just didn't believe her.
But that was before.
You cleared your throat and did your best to look like you werenât wildly nauseous. âSir, do you remember the⌠the tea you sold me, a few months ago?âÂ
The apothecaryâs posture changed immediately, and so did his facial expressionâhe stood straight, looking very solemn, crossing his hands on the counter. âYes, my lady. I dared not ask, of course, but I noticed you stopped buying it.â
You nodded. âYes. Of course, Iâm sure you understand.âÂ
He nodded, too. âI understand.âÂ
In your chest, your heart fluttered and it felt, for half a second, like you were freefalling. âIâd like to purchase something like it, only stronger, more potent. I was told of such a product by somebody who I trust, who was familiar with it.â Because she used to work in a pleasure houseâbut you didnât need to tell him that. A man his age must have seen all kinds of things. âIâm sure you understand,â you said again.
He did not avert his gaze, staring at you in the eyes with a mix of surprise and sadness, which you did your best to ignore. âI understand,â he echoed, his voice a little more faint. âStronger, you sayâŚâÂ
Some poisons were just strong enough to eradicate a life growing inside a womanâs body without harming her too much. But, according to Sookie, it could destroy her womb if there was nothing to kill inside of it, so one should be absolutely certain to be pregnant before starting the treatment.Â
You felt tears returning to your eyes but you fought them. âYes. A bottle, please.âÂ
The man sighed. It took a few seconds before he finally disappeared at the back of his shop. You took this opportunity to wipe the corner of your eyes while he was searching for what he needed.Â
You wondered if god existed, and if he did, if he would ever grant you forgiveness for what you were doing.Â
All that you had ever wanted was to be a good wife to Hyunjin. All your life you had waited for it, for the day you would marry him and then for the wedding night that would follow.Â
And now it just felt all like a big failure. You understood him and his wishes and his fears, yet it did not stop you from wanting to be his wife, really his wife, without him being ashamed or afraid.Â
It was all that you had ever been allowed to beâHyunjinâs betrothed. You owed it to him and to yourself to try and make this marriage whole.Â
The apothecary returned, putting a small bottle made of dark glass on the counter. âA woman should take a few capsules as soon as she notices her monthly bleeds are late,â he said in a low voice, barely audible even in the quietness of the shop. âShe should take a few more a day or so later while she is still bleeding. To⌠ensure the job is finished.âÂ
You took the small vial and stored it safely in your bag, exchanging it for a generous amount of gold coins. But the man did not touch them, he only stared at them.
âI would prefer if you did not pay me for this, my lady.â He pushed the gold back toward you. âI do not hold judgmentâI do not need to know the reasoning, but I wonât accept payment, not for this. I simply canât.âÂ
His words were just like blades, each of them sinking into your chest deep enough to draw blood. You collected the coins with shaky hands and left the store without a word.
The days were shorter nowâthe sun disappeared faster than you expected it to. It seemed like you saw less and less of it, noticeably so, every day. You went for a walk around the estate after your errands with Ha-ri, letting it drag much longer than you needed to, more than you should. It just felt good to be alone with the exception, occasionally, of a small forest animal.Â
At dusk, you came across a squirrel who looked a lot like Henry, except this one had a tail. The bottle was tucked in the inner pockets of your jacket and it felt as though it weighed a ton. You remembered Henry and how he had simply stopped visiting you one day. Lillie had told you he might have found a partner but you just knew he was dead.
It didnât matter that it was dark outsideâno matter where you went, the lights inside Hwang Manor shone bright enough for you to see in the distance. All you had to do was walk towards them and hope not to put your feet in the wrong place. Only, maybe it was exactly what you wanted. Maybe you didnât mind slipping and falling into a creek and hitting your head. Maybe you didnât mind tumbling into the lake and being swallowed by it, only to never be seen again.Â
You used to believe that nothing could be as painful as that, as difficult as that. To be Hyunjinâs wife and not knowing whether he loved you or not. How foolish of you.
This was much worse. Knowing that his heart, indeed, beat for you, and yet he kept a reasonable distance between you two. On purpose. According to his wishes. You had done nothing to soothe his wounds, because, in fact, you had made them worse, like rubbing salt onto them instead of kissing them softly. Because you were a stupid little girl, and your motherâs relentless teaching had done nothing to prepare you for this. It had done nothing to make you enough for him, for Hyunjin.
After all, he wasnât just a lord. He was Lord Hwang, but he was intelligentâvery, very intelligent. He knew much about the world and about literature, or art. He took good care of the business he oversaw. He had refined tastesâhe liked beautiful things, complicated things. Things like him. An intricate meal, a detailed painting, an interesting conversation. He liked silk sheets and lavish wine. He liked unusual books.Â
And youâŚÂ
He loved you. But you were too simple, too uncomplicated to permeate him the way he did for you. To hold any weight where it mattered.
He loved you.
But marrying you had not been an option. He had not chosen you.Â
You heard them calling out for you sometime after sunset. You quickly made your way back as you did not wish to draw any attention to you. It was Seonghwa who welcomed you, wrapping a blanket around your shoulders. âMy lady,â he said with concern in his eyes. âSupper will be served shortly, I⌠Are you alright?âÂ
You hadnât criedâthe sorrow you felt was too deep for that. The tears would take longer to make an appearance. You felt like a beehive in the winter. Alive somewhere inside, but sluggish, inactive. You wondered what exactly Seonghwa was seeing in you to inquire about your well-being. You wondered if the shadows haunting you had begun spilling from your eyes, or perhaps your lips. They, for sure, had spilled from your heart, hurting Hyunjin in the process.
âIâm alright. Donât let them wait on my behalf, Seonghwa. Have the chef serve dinner whenever he wishes and Iâll join as soon as I can.âÂ
You let Ahnjong take you to your bedroom so she could brush out your hair for dinner. You remembered, then, that the Bangs were visiting tonight. It happened often and those dinners were usually rather spontaneous. Normally, you were delighted.
She brushed out your hair and put it in a braid and you felt nothing. Your mind was elsewhere. âMy lady,â the young maid mentioned, âthereâs mud on your gown.â And there was. You let her undress you, removing all the layers that had been soiled by the damp autumn soil. You let her choose your new gown and she went for the deep red one. âHis lordshipâs favorite,â as she pointed out.Â
When she wasnât looking, you took the small glass bottle from your jacket and hid it underneath your pillows. Your hands were still shaking and you realized it was because you didnât want to face Hyunjin again. You didnât want to see the bitterness in his eyes, didnât want to feel his resentment behind the facade that he would surely put up.Â
You stared into your mirror, taking in the sight of you. Your parents were wealthy but you had never owned beautiful clothes such as this gown before you came here. You hadnât been allowed thatâfor soirĂŠes, your mother would borrow a gown from someone else. She didnât want you turning ungrateful, she said. She wanted to remind you of what you were worth. You could see it nowâall of it. In a way you never had. You could be wearing the queenâs dress but it wouldnât make a difference. It wouldnât change you as a person, wouldnât add to your value. It wouldnât complicate you.Â
Not once before had it occurred to you, not in a way that reached you so deep within your bones. That you werenâtHyunjinâs choice. You were his fatherâs choiceâor rather, a way for him to settle the matter quickly. After all, when he and your father made the arrangement, he was already engaged in his extra-marital affairs. Perhaps he knew that it would end badly. Perhaps he could sense that he was risking a lot and that his family was likely to lose its reputation sooner rather than later, so he just took the first offer he got. And you were that. The first offer, or the more convenient one.
It had never occurred to you before because you had never, not once, felt like Hyunjin would have wanted it any other way. Until now, it had simply felt like fate had brought the two of you together. Maybe, in some vain, arrogant way, you had believed that he would have picked you if given a choice.
But he had not chosen you.
Dinner was already ongoing when you descended the stairs. You heard your guests first. Maybe Hyunjin had decided not to attend. Maybe he didnât want to see you. Maybeâ
âWe shouldnât be gone for more than three or four days,â you heard him say in the dining room. âIâm thinking, after weâre back, we should go on a hunting trip. The three of us.âÂ
Your heart dropped. At least now you knew he was at dinner, so he wasnât completely disgusted with the idea of eating at the same table as you.
But he wasnât even gone yet and he was planning to leave again once he returned.Â
âWhat an excellent idea!â Lord Christopher exclaimed, after which you heard a thump, as though someone had punched the table.
âWhat, me too?â Ah, so Changbin was there as well. Which meantâŚ
âMy lord, are you planning on stealing my husband away from me?â Ha-ri asked playfully. Only you knew she sort of meant it. And you knew, maybe, that she thought having Hyunjin close would comfort you.
âOf course not,â Hyunjin responded, and you heard wine or liquor in his voice. âItâll be just a few days.âÂ
âMaybe I could meet with you in the city the day after tomorrow,â Lord Chris offered. âThe land on the West has quite a lot of deer, or so I heard. Should we ask Lord Jeon to come along, too?â
A short silence followed. By then you had made it to the dining room but waited behind the door before you entered.Â
âMaybe we could,â Hyunjin said in the end. âI know heâs rather busy, but asking would, at the very least, be polite.âÂ
You chose this moment to make your entrance, hoping that the conversation between the men would be engrossing enough that you wouldnât be noticed. However, naturally, every head in the room turned to you, all five of them, and also the maid who was pouring wine into everyoneâs glass.
âOh no, stay seated,â you told them when they went to stand for you. You walked around the roomâthey had given you a chair next to Hyunjinâs. Of course they wouldâthe housekeepers didnât know any better. A million thoughts were going through your mind and yet you somehow managed to remain composed, even trying to smile. âItâs lovely to have supper with such friendly guests. Please excuse my tardiness.âÂ
âOh no, the pleasure is ours, my lady.â Lady Bang was glowing tonight with her hair held at the back of her head and a stunning periwinkle gown. âI was afraid you were ill.âÂ
You went towards your seat as you tried to come up with a believable lie, something that would be neutral, something that would not hint at anything. You knew the maids were listening, and even though they had no bad intentions, it seemed that they liked to analyze everything that was said between you and other guests of the manor. If you lied about where you had been, they would know, and it meant everybody would know you were hiding something.
But how could you make them understand that it wasnât a tangible thing that you were hiding? Not an affair or criminal activity. It was your sorrow that you wanted to keep secret. Because you didnât want anybody to know. And above all, you didnât want Hyunjin to know that you were gloomy. It would only make things worse.Â
As you reached for your chair, Hyunjin pushed himself up rather abruptly, and for an instant, you believed he would leave dinner and your heart skipped a few beats. Instead he pulled your chair for you, dipping his head. âMy lady.â He did not look at you when he spoke, but you sat down anyway, doing your best to keep your breathing steady. But the truth was that your head was much like an apiary in the summerâbuzzing and lively, with every part of it sparking and working.Â
You wanted to cry. You wanted to sit down with Hyunjin and talk to him calmly. You wanted to slap him in the face maybe. You wanted to tell him that you loved him. You wanted to kiss him. You wanted to watch him paint. You wanted to have a nice dinner with your friends and get drunk on wine and you wanted your heart to be lighter than the petals of a rose. You wanted to cry. You really wanted to cry. You wanted to ask Lady Bang and Ha-ri to follow you to your bedroom so that you could tell them everything.Â
Yes. Yes, that was it.
The burden had become too heavy and now it felt as though you were suffocating. As though you were drowning in it.
You were given a glass with wine in it as well as a bowl of soup. The others were halfway through theirsâyou tasted it, partially to warm yourself up and mostly to delay the moment youâd have to talk. Nobody had said anything after you sat downâbut it was obvious that Lady Bang was still expecting a response.
âI went for an evening walk and lost track of time,â you told her. âI always get a little confused at this time of the year. The days are getting so short.âÂ
âYou shouldnât go alone,â Lord Christopher said with a frown. âEspecially at this time of the yearâthe wild animals are looking to feed in ample amounts to prepare for the winter.â
You took a large sip of wineâit was good, sweet but still strong and tangy. âOh, I doubt I would become anythingâs dinner, my lord.âÂ
âI must insist. There have been sightings of wolves in the mountains nearby. I would hate it if anything happened to you, my lady.âÂ
You almost choked on your wine but it went largely unnoticed when Changbin echoed Lord Christopherâs advice and the attention was all turned to him. You managed to swallow the wine and ate some soup to soothe your throat, but now your mind was tainted with Christopherâs words. He was rightâsomething could happen to you out there. Anything. You could come face to face with a bear or a wolf or a hunter could mistake you for the game he'd been tailing for a day. You could slip and fall and crack your skull open on a rock.
You felt it all happeningâyou became aware of the danger and you waited for the moment you would be afraid, only, it never came. Instead you were invaded with the urge to return out there and walk blindly into the forest, waiting for it to decide your fate. Maybe it would be a relief for Hyunjinâmaybe he would get to choose who sat next to him for supper and who woke up in his bed in the morning.Â
âThank you for your concern,â you told Lord Christopher, hoping he wouldnât notice how weak your voice was. âIâll keep that in mind should I want to be out again after dark.âÂ
Ha-ri went to say something but she was interrupted by the loud knock it made when Hyunjin put his empty wine glass back on the tableâa lot harder than he needed to.Â
âNo. You will not anymore. Never again.â He spoke at low volume but he enunciated every word very clearly, making himself heard. His voice was coated with quiet rage, turning your stomach to lead. He did not look your way but he went on. âYou will not venture away from the manor after dusk. Never again. It isnât safe. Thereâs nothing to gain from it. And if you must do it in the daylight, you will do so in the company of someone else. Is that clear?âÂ
The silence that filled the room following Hyunjinâs statementâor rather, commandâwas so heavy that you could almost feel it permeate your lungs as you breathed in. You dared not look away from your bowl of soup, wondering what you ought to do next. That had never happened before, not like that at least. Hyunjin had never been the kind of husband to exert his manly rightsâquite the contrary, in fact. You could tell he always tried to be anything but whatever his father had been like.Â
You did raise your head then, at the same time as Hyunjin didâthe guests were very interested in their own soup all of a suddenâand you saw them. In his eyes. You saw those demons you had always heard about, those you had been warned against most of your life. You had never been frightened of Hyunjin until today. Until this morning, when he lost himself. Until now, when he didnât look like himself.Â
And yet you could not look away. And yet you could not love him less.
You stared into them, into his eyes, searching for the ones you had come to know. The ones that were like molasses on a slice of pound cake. They were still somewhere in there, werenât they?
Hyunjin tried so very hard not to be like his father. As for you?Â
Youâyou were the result of years of coaching from your mother. She had taught you all about thatâwhat to do when your husband would give you a command, whether it was to get him a glass of liquor, to help him change his clothes, or to get on your knees so he could have his way with you. Your mother might have forced these thoughts into your mind, but she was far from being the submissive wife she had tried to fashion you into. Tonight, if she were you, she would have snapped at Hyunjin for his comment, in front of their guests. Things would have escalated later. You used to hide your head under your pillows so as not to hear your parents yell at each other. And other things.Â
You tried so very hard not to be like your mother, too.
You took one deep breath, then another. You reached for Hyunjinâhe recoiled at first, a faint scowl adorning his brow, but you simply took his hand in yours and squeezed it gently.Â
âOf course, my love.â You gulped, but the knot in your throat remained. âYouâre right. It was reckless. I shall be more cautious in the future.âÂ
He stared down at the hand you were holding as though he couldnât believe what you were saying. You figured the moment might have lasted a thousand years if it werenât for the maids who came to swap the bowls of soup for dinner plates, which were filled with a roast that looked and smelled fantastic.Â
Lord Christopher commented on it, echoed by Changbin, and dinner went on. It went on around you but you took no part in it, simply responding to questions when you were talked to and smiling when someone said something humorous.Â
They spoke about politics. Lady Bang inquired about Ha-riâs dressmaking. Changbin asked Christopher about the renovations that were taking place on their estate. Lord Christopher asked if you had any plans to go and visit your family back home sometime soon and you made up some lie about it.Â
Ha-ri suggested that everyone went outside before dessertâjust to get some fresh air. You followed her as she took your hand and invited Lady Bang to come with while the men could go wherever they wanted. But really you knew she just wanted to get you away from Hyunjin.Â
Only you didnât really. He was angry at youâmore than he had ever been. And you were his wife and you were supposed to make things right.Â
Ha-ri led you and Lady Bang to her sewing room, where she opened the door of the balcony to let in the night air. You stood there for a moment while she was showing Lady Bang her new fabrics for the winter, but your mind was wandering elsewhere. Your thoughts had been sent a few days from now, when your husband would be in the city. He was so angry at you that he might just go see if any brothel had something to offer. Perhaps he would fuck once or twice until he was pacified, and then return to you.Â
He did choose them. Those women. He asked for them and was given some time and pleasure with them in exchange for money. But you? He never asked for you and he got nothing in exchange. Nothing at all.Â
You thought nothing could make your night worseâand then two maids entered the sewing room with a teapot and cups. âMr. Seonghwa sends us,â one of them, Salma, said. âHe said the ladies might want a warm drink.âÂ
You watched as the two young women prepared the tray and the tea, your mind far away from this room. You were listening more to whatever was outside than what was occurring here, searching for Hyunjinâs distant voice in the night, wondering what he, Christopher, and Changbin might be talking about. You would not be so bold as to suggest he would ever talk about you with them, but, selfishly, you wanted to hear some kind of sorrow in his voiceâthe same that inhabited you. Or maybe you had it all wrong. Maybe that anguish, that desolation, didnât live within either of youâperhaps it was the other way around. Maybe, instead, it embraced you, contained you, like a cursed sanctuary. Maybe it had become your home, one that you werenât sure you would ever escape.Â
You thought nothing could make your night worseâand then, when the maids were done setting up the small table for tea, they glanced at each other with knowing smiles and pink cheeks.Â
âMy lady,â the other one, Emi, told Lady Bang, dipping her head very low. âPardon the intrusion, Iââ She took a deep breath, as though whatever she was about to say was terrible.Â
Inquisitive, you took a few steps towards the scene.
âWe were simply wondering if what they say about you is true, my lady,â Salma added, also dropping her head, her cheeks darkening. âIt would be such wonderful news.âÂ
You instantly knew what this was all about when you saw Lady Bang react to the question by instinctively pressing a hand on her stomach.Â
A few seconds passed, during which Ha-ri stared at you, and only at you. Slowly, Lady Bang turned to you with a complicated expression on her face, making you wonder how much she knew. How much she had guessed. And that made you wonder how obvious it all was.Â
It made you wonder what the maids were saying about you.
It made you wonder if they could hear your heart shattering in your chest.
âWell,â you made yourself say, knowing very well you werenât fooling anybody but pushing through regardless. Let them talk. The maids and the stewards and the apothecary and everyone else. Let them say whatever the fuck they wanted. âIs it true or not, my friend?âÂ
She hesitated, biting her lip, but not moving her hand from her stomach. âYes, it is. I found out last month, but I wasnât sure it would hold so I didnâtââ
You raised your hand. It made you wonder if they noticed how badly it was trembling. âThereâs no need to explain yourself, my lady. What lovely news! Congratulations!âÂ
It was her, Lady Bang, who pulled you into an embrace, not the other way around. You vaguely heard Ha-ri dismiss the two maids, doing so politely but firmly as your friend held you against her. Despite the numerous layers of fabric both of you were wearing, it seemed, almost, like you could feel it. It radiated from her, from her belly. The life that she bore. The miracle, the blessing she carried inside of it. You allowed yourself to cry, figuring at first that it may look as though they were tears of joy. And really, they were. But there was so much more to it.Â
âI didnât want you to hear about it like that,â she whispered into your ear. âIâm so sorry.âÂ
You didnât respond, prolonging the hug more than you needed to.Â
And then you saw everything so clearly it was like looking through a window. You understood everything. When they told you who you would marry and when, and how, and why. When they decided for you. You understood why your mother had tried to put an end to the betrothal, why she had been so adamant that you should marry somebody else.Â
You understood why she had warned you against broken things. It was not because she hated you, not because she resented you or despised you. It was because she was protecting you. Out of love. The way a mother only could love, which is to say, violently. Had she known? She couldnât possibly have known, at that time, the exact details of it all, but she must have guessed that one day you would find yourself in such a challenging situation. She didnât want you to get attached to Henry because he was a tiny squirrel, smaller and weaker than the others, and he was likely to become a hawkâs dinner or freeze to death much sooner than you expected.Â
She didnât want you to get attached to Hyunjin because she knew that once a woman had opened her heart to a man, he held the power to destroy her.Â
You understood everything. You understood why you were so ashamed of itâthat Hyunjin refused so categorically to ever, ever fuck you. You understood why it hurt you so much, why that shame lingered, why and how it had stained you. Like ink on paper. Like red wine on white silk.Â
Because your mother had not seen that coming. And she had promised you that when a lady made sure her garden remained unsullied, it would be the one thing her lord husband would without a doubt love about her, that he would desire it, that he would vulgarize it to his heart's content. She had made it seem as though there was no way this would ever fail. That if you were still pure on your wedding day, your husband would plant his seed in your garden, and there was no other option. She had made you feel as though it was the worst of offenses when a man wanted nothing to do with his wifeâs garden.Â
She had made you feel as though you would fail, as a woman and as a wife, should you not be touched by your husband.
And even if you understood Hyunjinâs struggles, his fears, his complicated feelings towards his father and even fatherhood itselfâyou couldnât undo the lectures that had been given to you, that had been carved onto your mind. They had become a part of you, intrinsically so. If you could, you would cut your skull open and pick them from your brain to discard them, but it would mean losing pieces of yourself. And you were okay with that. If, somehow, you could turn into a blank canvas, if you could be unmade, you would let Hyunjin fashion you into a wife that would be enough for him. That would be enough to heal his wounds instead of making them worse.Â
You thought of the old beekeeper, Mr. Ito, and of the day he showed you how to make sure honey was pure. He said that if one day, you were no longer able to produce your own, you should at least know how to procure the real thing.Â
âIf honey is pure,â he had said, using a match to light a candle, âit will burn.â And he had shown you all the stepsâwrapping cotton around a stick and coating it in honey before dipping it into the flame. You remembered the scent of it, sweet, sweet, sweet, and the way the honey, pure and unadulterated, caught on fire.Â
You wanted to run back home. It was not possible but you wished for it anywayâyou wanted to see the villa from afar and run barefoot on the grass again. You wanted Henry to be still alive. You wanted Mr. Ito to be still alive. Even just for an instant, you wanted to be more like that little girl again, the one who held hope in her heart, the one who wasnât afraid to burn.
âYou ladies enjoy your tea,â you murmured, pulling away before anyone could see your tears. âI will go see how dessert is coming along.âÂ
Neither Ha-ri or Lady Bang tried to stop you even though you werenât particularly convincing. You walked away, ignoring the staircase as you passed itâyou had no intention of checking on dessert or on anything. Hell, you werenât even sure what you were doing at all until you made it to your bedroom and caught sight of your bed. You barely took the time to close the door behind you, crossing the room until you were sitting atop your soft mattress, feeling the linen and silk sheets laid on it. All white. Oh, how badly you wanted to stain them red.Â
You reached under your pillow, finding the small bottle obtained from the apothecary earlier. The label only had a skull and crossbones on it and, underneath in a thin font, Diachylon.
What had he said? The apothecary? That you should take it after noticing a pregnancy. He couldnât have known, of course, that you had an entirely different objective in mind.Â
You wanted to be more than this.Â
You wanted the state of your garden to be anything but a problem. All this time, all your lifeâit all had been about this, hadnât it? So much had been forbiddenârunning, ice skating, horse riding. Freedom. All this time you had believed, subconsciously or not, that your fucking garden should remain unsullied. That Hyunjin would be a happy husband as long as you managed to offer yourself to him in the purest form you could. That he would be displeased should your garden be anything but immaculate.
There was one thing you hadnât even considered, though.
What if you didnât have a garden at all?
What if you set fire to it? Would it burn? If it was pure, would it burn?Â
With trembling hands, you pushed the lid open, looking at the contents of the bottle. It was difficult to make out in the dark lighting of your room, but it was half-full with capsules. You held one between your thumb and your index, inspecting it. It seemed to be dark in color and had a thick consistency, just like honey. A strong, unpleasant scent invaded your nostrils when you breathed inâthis had nothing to do with the little teas you brewed yourself a few months ago. This had the power to make a barren, lifeless place out of your womb. You brought the capsule to your lips after pouring yourself a glass of water from the pitcher on your nightstand.Â
Knock knock knock. âDarling? Darling, are you in there?âÂ
You stopped breathing, motionless, your heart picking up a pace.Â
He couldnât know. He couldnât ever find out about what you were doing. You knew it would destroy him. You knew that on some days, he wasnât much more than a castle without bricks, a tree without leaves, a canvas without paint. And today was one of those days.Â
It took exactly three seconds for you to bury the bottle under your pillow. You would remove it sometime later when it would be safe, after you had ingested the pills. When you would be absolutely certain that nobody would ever find out. You would never tell anybody. They would presume. Hyunjin would, Dr. Lee, even Ha-ri. But you would die before admitting the truth to anybody. You wouldnât even tell Cloud. You wouldnât even tell the bees. You wouldnât even tell the wind about what you had done.Â
âDarling?â Hyunjin said again, his voice lower now. âCan I come in?âÂ
You stood, figuring that not responding would only make things worse, but before you could cross the room, he let himself inâyou hadnât locked the door, apparently. Just two seconds later and he would have caught you shoving capsules of poison down your throat.
It took your breath away. You wondered if you would ever not be moved by him, by his presence, his existence. He stood there, his back on the closed door behind him, staring at you with his eyes like ink on paper, his lips parted, plush and raw from whiskey, like red wine on white silk.Â
âYes.â The words spilled from you without you having any control over themâlike one part of your brain was constantly on edge, ready to make you Lady Hwang at a momentâs notice. âI apologize. I didnât mean to make our guests wait, I justââÂ
Whatever excuse you were going to make up, he didnât let you say it out loud. He pushed himself off the wall, darting towards youâfor an instant, it looked a little like he was going to attack, to pounce like a tiger. You had seen a tiger only once in your life but it was quite memorable. It might have been domesticated but it was still the largest cat you had ever seen. You wouldnât forget the look in its eyes as it descended to devour the carcass the circus workers had left for him. A beautiful beast, too thin, locked in a cage.Â
Hyunjin had the same look in his eyes tonight. What a beautiful beast he was, too, only his prison did not have bars.Â
He did not lash outâwhen he stood just a few inches away from you, he stared down at you, cupping your cheek in his big hand. âDarling,â he whispered. His breath smelled like whiskey and like wine. His hair smelled like the outside air. âIâm sorry. Iâm sorry.âÂ
It was not the first time it happened. The last time, he had gotten angry because you had drunkenly made a risquĂŠ comment during dinner. Even if it was an intimate dinner with people from the estateâChangbin, Ha-ri, Dr. Lee, Seonghwa, and Su-jin. It was always the same thing. You keep tempting me, he had said. And then he kissed you hard but you kissed him harder and he ate your pussy all night.Â
âDonât be sorry,â you murmured, caressing his perfect face. âItâs okay. Do you want to lie down?â He was very drunkâhe was holding on to you as though he was afraid to collapse.Â
âNo, I wantâI wantââ but he couldnât say it. Whatever he had in mind remained there as he frowned, his gaze not once moving away from your lips. âI want to stop being like that,â he uttered finally.Â
You wanted to tell him that it would be alright soon.
But he kissed you.Â
He pressed his lips onto yours, taking your mouth in his, claiming you once again. You kissed him back as his hands descended on your waist so he could pull you closer. He buried his face into your neck, biting you gently, suckling on your skin. He gently led you towards your bed, his lips not once leaving your skin, his tongue like flames licking at you.Â
Heâs too drunk, you told yourself as he lifted you just enough so he could sit you down on your mattress. But it felt too good. And you loved him too much.Â
âDonât let me talk to you like that again, darling,â Hyunjin said as he followed you onto the bed, on his hands and knees above you. He kissed you again, his hands scrambling to lift up your skirt. âPlease. Promise me you wonât let me ever again.â
Your mind was all over the place, so much so that you didnât know what he was referring to. After the breakfast fiasco, he had barely acknowledged your presence.Â
âYou were right though, I shouldnât have stayed out after dark,â you pointed out, taking his face in your hands, forcing him to look you in the eyes.Â
His had tears in them. And it broke your heart.
âMy love.â Your throat was shutting itself tight but you fought it. âYou can be mad at me, itâs alright. This is what a marriage is like.â And you meant it.Â
Hyunjin froze in place, one hand squeezing your thigh, the other somewhere near your head. âMad at you?â He frowned deeply, staring at you like it was the first time he ever saw you. âMad at YOU?âÂ
You felt even more foolish then, your pussy already wet just from a few kisses and even fewer touches, realizing that you had misunderstood him.Â
âNone of that anger, or hatred, is directed at you,â Hyunjin managed slowly. âI love you. My beekeeper wife. I love you. I love you. I love youââ And then he was back on your lips, his tongue gliding in between yours.Â
How could you tell him? How could you tell him that he was his own worst enemy, that he was the only thing keeping himself on a leash?Â
âI shouldnât have spoken to you like that tonight, but that's not all. This morning too.â He spoke to you between kisses, feeling the damp linen over your cunt with his fingertips. âI shouldnât have⌠touched you like that. Itâs wrong.âÂ
And yet you clenched around nothing remembering the way it had felt when he pinned you down, when you had been trapped underneath him. When he held you in place, his grip unforgivable and strong. It would have been factually wrong to say you hadnât been frightened at all. And yet you feared nothing from Hyunjinâyou trusted him with your life.Â
âI liked it,â you breathed, losing yourself in him already.Â
âItâs wrong. Baby, itâs wrong,â he insisted, his voice somewhere between a moan and a grunt. âDonât ever let me do this to you again. Hit me if you must.âÂ
You moaned too when he rubbed your folds through your underskirt in slow, lazy circles. You reached for his trousers, attempting to undo the button. Hitting him? No. Taking his cock in your mouth and letting him fuck your throat? Yes.Â
âOh fuck,â he groaned when you squeezed him through his pants.Â
Hereâs what would happenâyou would have drunken sex during which Hyunjin would open his heart to you, during which he would pleasure you, shatter you, devour you. He would finish in your mouth and you would welcome the sting at your throat and your sore jaw because they felt just like kisses. It wouldnât be the first time such an event occurred. Tomorrow, you would talk it out. And progress would or wouldnât be made.Â
Or so you thought, until Hyunjin stretched his arm a little to pull your pillow closer, perhaps to lay it under your head. He stopped everything, motionless, and you could only watch in horror as he pulled the vial from where you had hastily hidden it. He looked at the label and then he looked at you. You remembered the morning of your thirteenth birthdayâthe day you became a woman. Waking up in a puddle of your own blood, afraid, ashamed as though you had done something terribly wrong.Â
Hyunjin pulled away, standing next to the bed, still gaping at the bottle he was holding, his tented pants unbuttoned.
One thing about Hyunjin though was that he kept his promises. He had hated speaking harshly at you that morning so, tonight, he did the opposite.Â
âDarling,â he said in a strangled voice, softer than you ever expected. âWhââ He lost his words again and you sat down on your bed, shaking. âI forbade you.â The look of betrayal on his face was, perhaps, the worst thing ever inflicted on you, worse than any insult your mother might have hurled at you. It would have hurt less if Hyunjin had hit you in the face.Â
âPlease,â you began, but you were in a panic, dizzy and tired and drunk and scared, and it seemed like you had lost all ability to speak. âHyunjinââ
Not once did he raise his voice. âCome.â He grabbed at your arm and did so in an exceptionally delicate manner. It would not have been different if you two were walking in a wildflower field on a sunny day. âHere, darling. Did you take these just now?âÂ
Before you could give him an answer, he dragged you to the lavatory, making you stand right in front of the sink. The mirror showed you a bleak reflection. You could barely recognize yourself.Â
âThrow them up. Now. Please.âÂ
âHyunjin, Iââ
He pressed his hand at the back of your head, forcing you to lean over the sink, but not really forcing you. He would have done the same motion should he have wanted to show you a beautiful flower on the ground. âDo you want me to do it for you?â he asked calmly, bringing his fingers near your lips. âItâs okay baby, itâll be over in a second.â Before you knew it, his fingers were in your mouth, reaching for your throat to stimulate your gag reflex. And he knew exactly how to do soâhe was very intimate with the aforementioned gag reflex.Â
He was so gentle with it that you werenât sure what brought the tears to your eyes exactlyâmaybe it was his distress, or the pussy-laced fingers invading your mouth. Or maybe it was shame and regret.Â
In one swift motion, you grabbed Hyunjinâs wrist to pull him away, freeing your throat. You coughed, choking on your own spit.Â
âDarling,â Hyunjin began, and you raised your hand to quiet him while you caught your breath.Â
You wiped the tears at the corner of your eyes, but one glance at the mirror revealed the mess that you had become. âI didnât take it. Iâm fine.âÂ
âYou didnât take it,â he repeated slowly, almost like he didnât understand. âYou didnât take the medication. Are you lying to me?â
âNo. I didnât.â You left the washroom, returning to your bedroom before he could get ahold of the capsules. While Hyunjin stood there, you quickly closed the lid on the bottle and set it on the small table by the window.Â
You noticed the droplets of water sticking to the glass. As though they were beckoning you, you made your way to the door leading to your balcony. The rain was light but cold, the sort of rain that was almost snow but not quite. Everything was dark, so dark that you could not make out the mountains on the horizon.Â
Hyunjin joined you in the cold, his eyes darker than the rainy night.Â
You wished, almost, that he would scream, that he would be enraged. You wished, almost, that he reacted violently. But instead, he held you. Close. He pressed your head on his chest and held you there, caressing your hair, rocking you ever so slightly in a comforting motion. You couldnât tell whether he was trying to comfort you or himself.
âDarling,â he whispered, his voice blending with the rain in the exact same way he blended a deep red with true black on a canvas. âI would kill any man or woman who laid a single finger on you. I almost did so once and I would and will do it again if I ever need to.â He held you tighter. He was warm, feverish, and his heartbeat was irregular. âIn this case, Iâm the one whoâs hurting you. So tell me, darling. Tell me what Iâm supposed to do.âÂ
You wanted to tell him that he wasnât hurting you but it would have been a lie. As reluctant as you were to admit it. You had never admitted it to yourself before. You swallowed a sob, wrapping your arms around your husband, holding onto him.Â
He pulled away so he could look you in the eyes, holding your face in his hands. His pretty traits were twisted in anguish. You watched as a raindrop rolled from his temple, where his wet hair stuck to his skin, down to his jaw. He waited patiently until you were strong enough to look him in the eyes, too.Â
He caressed your lips with his thumbâhe didnât seem drunk anymore, as though the shock had sobered him up.Â
âDarling,â he said nonetheless. âIâm begging you. Iâm begging you. Iâm nothing without you. Nothing, do you hear me? Your absence would cause my demise, in one way or another. And yet I do not want to die. I want to be alive. With you. I want to hear your laughter, I want to wake up by your side. I want to taste your honey. I want to paint you, and travel with you, andââ He paused, overwhelmed, while your heart swelled with love and something even deeper than that, something that didnât even have a name. âIâm sorry Iâm not enough. Iâm sorry I canât give you what you want. But please, donâtââÂ
You put your hands over hisâhe was trembling. He was digging a hole in your chest.Â
âIâm sorry I did that this morning. Iâm sorry I got angry. Iâm sorry. Iâm so sorry.â You had never seen him like that. He was broken.Â
âI told you I likedââÂ
But he didnât let you finish your sentence. He shook his head and a few more droplets of rain rolled down his cheeks. âYou donât know what was on my mind. Terrible things. Disgusting things. I almostâŚâ His gaze became unfocused as he replayed the scene in his mind. He bit his lip hard enough to draw blood. âIt wonât happen again. I wonât let it. I wonât hurt you, I wonâtââÂ
âHyunjin.â You thought about all of the colors in your heart, about all of the words in your mind, about all of the sorrow in your veins. You wantedâno, you neededâhim to understand. âAll my life, they told me I needed to do this and that and be this and that and not to do this or that. And not to say this, but to say that. And I know that your childhood was awful, a lot worse than mine, but you will never understand what it is to have been born a woman.âÂ
That seemed to unsettle him and to ground him at once. He straightened up a little, looking at you inquisitively, listening as the rain kept on pouring on the both of you.Â
âEvery day, from the age of six or seven years old,â you went on, âI was reminded of how important it all was. I was told that if I did wellâif I was intelligent enough, pretty enough, if I took care of my hair, of my body, of myââ You gulped, finding it harder to breathe. âOf my garden, I would become worthy of bearing your heirs. Hyunjin, itâs the only thing that was allowed to define me. My entire life. The beekeeping was just a distraction from that reality. I was made to be the mother of your children more than I was made to be your wife. I donât know what I am without that. Iâm nothing if Iâm not that. And yet I understand you, and I respect your wish to never have children. I love you, Hyunjin. I just wanted⌠I think I just wanted to get rid of that burden. I told myself it was to relieve you of it, but really, it was for me. I wanted to be something more.âÂ
Slowly, Hyunjin lowered his face just millimeters away from yours, ghosting your lips with his, his hot breath spreading on your skin like ink on paper, like red wine on white silk. His forehead pushed onto yours gently.Â
âMy pretty, pretty wife.â He kissed youâa deep, languid kiss, his tongue caressing yours, his fingers closing into fists in your hair. âCanât you see? Canât you see what I see in you?â
Another kiss followedâthis time, however, he pulled you with him until his back hit the wall behind him. It rained a little less here, close to the manor, but a shiver went down your spine anyway.Â
âIt was never about what I want or donât want,â he continued, his lips caressing yours with every word. âI do want it too. More than you would ever expect. I want to fuck a baby into you. I want to make love to you and I want to see your belly swell with the life that I put inside it. I want to hold the baby we made together and kiss its little baby forehead. And then, when itâs big enough, I want to fuck another into you. And another. I want to love them the way my father never loved me. I want to love you, and them, forever. Itâs not about what I want or not. I want it. I just cannot, in good conscience, let it become reality. My blood is tainted. The fairy tale would turn into a nightmare, and I would hurt you, and our family.âÂ
Traumatized. Your husband was traumatized.Â
And maybe, probably, so were you.Â
You buried your face in the crook of his neck, where the scent of his cologne was stronger. He held you in his arms for what might have been a minute, or perhaps an hour. He only moved when he noticed your body trembling not from emotion, but from the coldâhe took your hand then, leading you back inside.Â
âIâll go ask for a bath for you.â He kissed the top of your head. âYou need to warm up. Iâll make sure our guests are comfortable for the night, too.âÂ
You didnât let go of his hand when he took a step awayâhe turned to you, head tilted to the side. âI want to have my bath here.â You took a deep breath. âAnd come back to me. Donât lock yourself in your room.âÂ
âIâll come back.â Normally, on the evenings before he left for a business trip, Hyunjin went to bed early, often in a room separate from yours since he didnât want to wake you up in the morning.
âOkay.â You touched him, his toned chest, letting your fingers linger on the buttons of his shirt. He left the room and you almost collapsed, barely making it to your bed.
You lay down. You just lay down, your eyes fixated on the ceiling above. You were still there when the two maids came inâit was Salma and Emi. You remembered that Anhjong was off duty until tomorrow morning.
âLady Hwang,â they said in unison, dropping their heads. Salma was holding Cloud in her arms. As soon as she saw you, the cat jumped on the ground so she could join you in bed. âHis lordship said you were to have a bath,â Emi added.Â
You gave them a simple hm hm, caressing Cloudâs soft fur as the almost fully-grown cat rolled into a ball next to you, her purrs echoing in the quiet room. You closed your eyes, trying to breathe at the same slow pace as her.Â
âShould we add anything to the water, my lady?â
âJust some jasmine oil, Salma. Thank you.â
âYou seem tired, Lady Hwang. Should we stay? I can wash your hair if you wish,â Emi offered.Â
âI am tired,â you admitted. âBut Iâll be just fine. After youâve filled the tub, please return to your quarters and enjoy your night.âÂ
You were eager to plunge into the small but comfortable copper tub of your lavatoryâwhile Hyunjinâs was more spacious, yours felt, well, like yours. You liked this room and everything about it. The balcony, the view in the morning, the furniture, the rich wood adorning it. In any caseâfor some reason you couldnât quite explain, you craved Hyunjinâs presence in a space that wasnât his. Almost like you feared you would overdose on him.
He was far by now. Most likely, he was back downstairs with Lord Christopher and Changbin who were having late-night drinks, as they usually did when the Bangs visited. Normally, you would be with Ha-ri and Lady Bang,somewhere in the manor, chatting and doing lady things. It did not matter, however, how far away Hyunjin wasâyou could still feel his hands on your body, his lips on your skin. You could still hear his voice in the air around you.Â
Canât you see what I see in you?
You wondered what it was that he saw. You wondered if any of it came from you, really you, or if it was all just more attributes forced onto you.Â
It was never about what I want, or what I donât want.
Apparently not. None of what Hyunjin had told you tonight felt realâyou would be able to recite each word but your mind simply could not believe them.Â
Hyunjin had not chosen you, he had not chosen to be engaged or married to you.Â
But neither had you. And it did not change one thing about the amount of love you held for him, or how profound that love was.Â
I want to fuck a baby into you.
You pressed your thighs together, clenching around nothing. You hadnât lied to himâit was true that you had been built into a baby-making wife. But what was also painfully true was your hunger. Your yearning. And it had nothing to do with childbearing. It was not the sort of thing a lady should ever have on her mind, let alone act on. They locked women in asylums for thoughts far less lewd or offensive.Â
You wanted Hyunjin that way because you desired him. You wanted him like he was a part of you that was missingâand maybe he was. Maybe he was exactly that. It didnât matter how it would happen. He could hastily take you from behind at some event, unable to help himself. Or he could take his time, sinking into you over the course of several hours. He could, if he wanted, hurt you. He could pull your skirt up at any moment and take you, claiming you for good. He could, if he wanted, fuck his demons into you. You would gladly rid him of them. He would not need to be kind. He could pin you down, tie you up, pull your hair. Nothing that he would do to you would hurt as much as the absence of him did.
But you loved him.
You loved him enough to give up just about anything if it meant you would be together. The edges of his soul were sharp, but so were yours. He had given you quite a few cuts just like you had done to him. He had never chosen to marry you. You had never chosen to marry him.
But you had fallen in love with him.
And you had chosen to let that happen.Â
No amount of tears, of pain, of frustration would ever make you regret that, or make you wish your life had taken another turn. Often, others kept their hearts closedâthey made sure to stay at a safe distance from the things they liked out of fear of those becoming things they loved. But you werenât like that and you had never been.Â
Once, your mother had told you, Why is it that whenever you love something, itâs broken, or crippled? And you did not have an answer to that question. You loved what you loved. Period. She had tried to paint you as weak because of it, and for a long time, you believed her. You could see it clearly now. No love, certainly not the honest, unconditional kind, was the symptom of a brittle heart. On the contraryâonly the bravest ones allowed it to permeate their souls.
One day, a traveling merchant visited your familyâs villaâhe was selling strange wares, something you had never seen before. Plates, vases, cups, teapotsâexcept they were not new. He had said that these pieces had once been valuable and that they had been discarded by their owners after shattering. This man, an old man, explained to your father and to you how he had made it his lifeâs purpose to repair these objects so they could be beautiful again. So that they could fulfill their purpose.Â
He used gold to reattach the pieces together. The practice had a name, only you couldnât remember what it was called.
You loved Hyunjin exactly the way he wasâas broken or crippled as he might be. And one day, maybe, he would let you become the string of gold that held him together, something that made him whole again.
A delicate scent of jasmine reached Hyunjinâs nostrils as soon as he pushed your bedroom door open. He almost dropped the tray he was holding when Cloud snaked in between his feet, dashing out of the room with one of her characteristicâand very loudâmeows. At this hour, she usually liked to hang around the kitchen. The staff fed her some meat and she liked to nap by the oven while it was still warm.Â
âIs that you?â you inquired. Your question was followed by gentle splashes of water, indicating that you were already bathing.Â
You didnât need to say his name. He knew when you were speaking to him because your voice sounded different then.
âItâs me.â Without wasting time, he went to you.
The air was thick in the washroom, heavy with the humidity created by your apparently very hot bath. You didnât seem bothered by the heat one bit, laying in the water like a siren, head resting on the edge of the tub. It was too dark for him to see you nearly as much as heâd like, but he could make out your silhouette under the water, familiar and enticing.Â
His heart still beating unevenly after tonightâs events, he sat on the chair near the bathtub, setting the tray on the counter next to him. You observed him in silence, your hair floating around you, your fingers tracing circles in the water, creating ripples on the surface of it.
âI brought you some food.â His voice was still shaking. He couldnât stop seeing it in his head. Those awful capsules you kept. The look in your eyes when he found you. The look in your eyes this morning when he almost violated you. âYou havenât had dessert.âÂ
You remained quiet, your eyes not leaving him once. He had stepped out just short of half an hour, long enough to let things settle, to digest at least some of it. Long enough to hear the staff talk excitedly about the big news, which had just become public. Literally moments ago, apparently. It was with tears in his eyes that Christopher confirmed it to be true. And it was with tears in his eyes, too, that Hyunjin embraced him and congratulated him. If there was one man Hyunjin had no doubt would be a wonderful father, it was him.
Hyunjin rose from his seat, grabbing one of the pieces of honeycomb he had brought. They were a part of your last harvestâwhile you insisted they should be reserved for presents to your friends or guests, he didnât like thinking that you worked so hard to take care of your bees, all summer, only to give away all of the yield.Â
It was sticky on his fingers. He lowered himself right by the tub and brought the sweet treat to your lips. You took a little bite from it and more honey spilled on his hand, dripping on your collarbone. Hyunjin ate the rest, savoring each second of it, the chewy beeswax and the unique taste of your wildflower honey.Â
âDo you want more, darling?â he asked softly, licking his fingers clean so he wouldnât waste a single drop.
âNo, Hyunjin. Thank you.âÂ
He stood again, wincing in painâthe injury to his knee had healed well but his leg had never been quite the same sinceâand returned to the counter to get you something else. Your lips curved into a smile when he brought you a small glass of port. You went to hold it but he didnât let you. Instead, he pressed it on your lips, helping you drink it. Â
âOh, itâs the good one,â you commented after the first sip.Â
âOnly the best for my darling wife,â he replied with a smile that was a little somber.Â
This time, you didnât let himâyou took the glass from him, allowing him to drink his own. It was really warm here and the fabric of his shirt stuck to his skin in places, or maybe it was just the curve of your bare shoulders.Â
Your free hand broke the surface of the water and you held it palm up towards him. His heart jumped a little when he understood what you were asking for, but he held your hand, squeezing it gently.Â
âI apologize, Hyunjin,â you uttered slowly. âIâm sorry IâŚâ You sighed, drinking a small sip of port while you found the right words. âIâve been so selfish.â
He almost choked on his drink. âSelfish? No, thatâs me, Iâm selfish. I keep doing what I think is right because otherwise my conscience couldnât take it. I should have realized before that it has consequences. That even if we think something is right, it doesnât mean it is.â
He had repeated the pattern you had been used toâputting you through his own issues and pacifying you with an apiary. Wasnât this exactly the same as your childhood? He still remembered your letters from thenâhe remembered all of your lettersâand how surprised you were that your parents would allow you to learn the beekeeping trade. His intentions mattered little hereâof course he had done it to make you happy. And it had made you happy. Only it was like making you lick honey off the stem of a roseâthe taste would be sweet, yes, but the thorns would cut your tongue nonetheless.
You sat upright, pulling yourself closer to him, your chin resting on the arm you kept on the edge of the tub. âWeâre sick in the head, arenât we?â you whispered, sorrow written all over your face. You sighed. âI had a very unladylike idea. And you had the very unlordly reaction to shove your fingers down my throat to make me throw up. All of that just because Iâm too⌠concupiscent for my, or your, own good.â
âConcupiscent?â He swallowed the last of his port but barely, coughing it down.Â
âYes, concupiscent!â you repeated, but this time, your traits had softened and the ghost of a smile appeared on your lips. âBoth in the literal and Christian sense of the word.âÂ
âYouâre exaggerating, darling.â He became serious then. In his head, his thoughts danced in circles, too fast for him to grasp onto one. The truth was that he couldnât stop thinking of the moment he saw you with these evil pills.Â
You had it all wrong. He had failed to make you see the love he had for you. He had failed you as a husband. As a friend. Because if you knew the extentâthe magnitudeâof his devotion, the thought wouldnât even have crossed your mind. Because then you would have known that any harm you caused yourself was inflicted tenfold onto him.Â
You were the only thing in the world that mattered. He would give up on it all if it meant that joy had made a home out of your heart.Â
âIâm not,â you went on. âIâm humbly asking for your forgiveness.âÂ
âThere is nothing to forgive. Darling. Nothing.â
You looked into his eyes. âYouâre wrong. There is. I am asking for your forgiveness. Please give it to me.âÂ
He discarded his empty glass. âI dare not ask for your forgiveness, butââ
You cut him off. âI forgive you.âÂ
The air had been kicked out of his lungsâfor a few seconds, he could only hear a ringing in his left ear. He didnât deserve you. He never had. You had too good of a heartâit should love something other than him. In a perfect life, you wouldnât be Lady Hwang. You wouldnât even know of his existence. In a perfect life, you would be a princess, or perhaps even a queen, and your husband would have a soul that didnât have holes in it.Â
But life wasnât perfect. Which meant that his life was absolutely perfect.
Because it had put you on his path. Because you were his sweet, sweet wife, living under his roof, because you took his name, because you were his. He knew he held no ownership over you and yet you were his woman. No matter how hurt, no matter how deranged either of you were, Hyunjin was your man and you were his woman.
âAnd donât tell me not to,â you added. âIâm not taking it back. Can we try again? Please?â
âTry what, darling?â he caressed your hair. Most of it was damp.Â
âThis. All of this. Our marriage.â You thought about it. âI donât want to erase what we had, but I want to move past tonight. I made a mistake and⌠I want to outgrow it.âÂ
He sighed, kissing your forehead. Your skin was warmâthe warmth spilled inside of him, traveling from his lips, spreading within his body. âThen, I do forgive you.â He still didnât see anything he ought to give you forgiveness for, but if it was something you needed to hear from him, then he ought to say it. âPromise me you will never hurt yourself? Youâll never only hurt you if you do so.âÂ
You nodded, tilting your head to the side, inviting him in for a kiss to which he did not resist. Hyunjin kissed you slowly. Your mouth tasted like honey and port and you smelled like jasmine and he was so in love with you that sometimes it felt like he was dying. It had to be what death felt like, right? Frightening and peaceful at once.Â
You deepened the kiss, breathing your sweet air into his lungs. He moaned when you rested your hands, dripping with hot scented water, onto his shoulders to pull him closer. Only he was as close as he could be. You owned him. He was little more than a marionette dictated by your existence.Â
He melted into the kiss, warmth spreading in his belly. Your fingers, sneaky and agile, began undoing the buttons of his shirt. You smiled against his lips as you undressed him lazily and he, himself, took care of his trousers. Clothes seemed so futile when he was with youâany moment spent without the contact of your bare skin on his was wasted.
It took no time for him to step into the tub with you. Only, this one was much smaller than the one in his bedroom so he had to squeeze himself there. Fortunately you found a solution to the problem when you came to straddle him, your ass resting on his thighs, your arms around his neck.Â
He kissed your lips again, then your neck. He licked the honey off your collarbone, his hands digging into the soft flesh of your hips. The warmth you had sparked within him had turned into something else. It felt, almost, like something was vibrating at a low frequency in his lower abdomen.Â
âBaby, we donât have to,â you murmured into his hair, holding onto him. âI just needed you close.â Maybe you were feeling him grow hard against your thighâHyunjin had no way to resist you. But it was becoming difficult. To resist.Â
Because, before tonight, he had never admitted to anybodyânot even to himselfâthe things he told you. In some ways, he became aware of them as the words spilled from his lips. He couldnât explain his panic. You wouldnât be the first woman to use this substance to prevent or stop birth. He was well aware of the practice.Â
How could he explain this to you?Â
He recognized the bottle in your hands from across the room. He had seen it before, or something similar enough anyway, in his motherâs bedroom cabinet. He couldnât explain it to you because he had no way of proving it anyway, but he knew that his mother had suffered numerous miscarriages. That he was the only baby who ever held inside her.Â
Had she wanted him at all?
Had she tried to get rid of him, too? Had she tried to prevent him altogether in preparation for whenever his father might want to unleash himself onto her next?Â
Maybe, what he had seen at that moment as you sat on your bed, holding the medicine in your hands, was the reality he had been avoiding for so longâby trying so hard to be unlike his father, he was becoming indistinguishable from him. He was becoming him, only in a different shade perhaps.Â
He wanted to be more than that. He wanted to be more than trying to be something, or someone. He wanted to deserve you. Really deserve you.
And it was difficult to resist. His willpower was weakening the more time he spent with you because it just meant he loved you a little more each day. And every day, it was a surprise because he had never imagined he would have the capacity to love you more than he already did.
And yet.Â
âIâm right here darling.âÂ
He let his hands travel along the paradise that was your body, stopping only to cup your breasts. He played with your nipples in slow, relaxed circles, using his thumbs. The rest of his fingers squeezed you, eliciting a little breathy moan out of you that was so alluring it made him dizzy.Â
You caressed him, tooâhis neck, his arms, his forearms, holding onto his wrists, your face twisting in pleasure with every new touch despite how you seemed to want to fight it. He didnât want to fight it. He didnât want to fight anymore. He had fought his inner demons his whole life, and for what?Â
âIâm right here,â he said again, his eyes gliding over your body. âGod, look at you. My pretty wife⌠and those titsâŚâÂ
You blushed violently so he did not let you turn awayâgently pushing your chin upwards with two of his fingers, Hyunjin watched as your skin became a canvas on which color was spreading, deep and vivid and moving, better than any masterpiece.Â
âLovely,â he commented, peppering your face with little kisses.Â
You giggled under your breath, taking his mouth for a deep kiss. Your lips were smooth and warmâhe kissed you back, desperately, losing a bit more of his sanity with each second.Â
âWhy are you laughing?â he questioned, amused and endeared and aroused. âDid I say something funny?âÂ
You shook your head and took a few instants to give him your response, during which he admired you some more. Your eyes like stories, telling more than an entire library ever could, your flushed cheeks, your lips, raw from kissing.Â
âNo.â You bit your lip, sinking onto him a little more, the weight of you delightful on his hardening cock. âYou make me feel beautiful.âÂ
Maybe it was his lifeâs callingâmaybe he had been put on his Earth to serve that one and only purpose. To serve you, your heart, and your beauty. To be the mirror in which you saw all of those things that made you the ravishing woman that you were. From your smile to the way you pronounced his name, or your sweeter-than-honey voice. Your mind,stronger than mountains and your heart. Your heart, which was much like an oceanâgrand, full of life, and deep. Your heart held so much that sometimes he worried you would collapse under its weight. But no, not you. Because you were you. His pretty beekeeper wife. And there was nothing he wanted more than to drown in that sea.Â
âYou are beautiful, darling.âÂ
He throbbed when you rolled your hips just a little, seeking friction. Your lips parted open but no sound came out of them. What a shameâhe ought to change that.Â
He, too, bucked his hips, but a little harder, and this time you blessed him with your voice, moaning as you let your head fall in the crook of his neck. He was going to be fully hard soon if you kept going. If he kept going. He slid his hands at your back to rest them on your ass, keeping you close. The feeling of your hard nipples against his chest was enough to drive him crazy. There was no space between your body and his, and yet it wasnât even enough. He needed more. He needed you closer even.
âI wish I had understood all these things before,â he confessed, massaging your ass, rubbing his erection on your thigh and the soft skin of your cunt.Â
âWe said we were moving on,â you reminded him, kissing his jaw. âI just want both of us to be happy.â
Moving on. Something he had never quite done before. His entire life, Hyunjin had been haunted by the ghosts of his past and some days, he still felt as though he was the little boy hiding in his roomâin this roomâto escape fury or despair.Â
But he would do any one thing you asked for. His defenses had all been annihilated tonight. He was finally allowing his heart to tap into his deepest, most secret desires, to turn silence into words, to let them take flight. He hoped it wasn't too late, but it was tonight that he realized that love would always be stronger than fear.Â
âWhat else do you want, baby?â Anything. You could ask for anything and he would give it to you.Â
Your lips crashed on his for a passionate kissâyou let go of his shoulders to shove a hand underwater, wrapping your fingers around his cock. âLet me make you feel good,â you said between kisses, squeezing him, making him see stars already. Heat pooled between his legs and he suppressed a whimper when you fondled his balls in the most tender, sensual way you possibly could.
He groaned in your mouth as you alternated between palming and pumping his length. âClose your eyes,â you whispered, pushing his head back to expose his neck. You kissed him there too.Â
You thumbed his tip skillfully, using just enough friction, touching him in all the right places. âOh fuck.â You knew him by heart, didnât you? He was a slave under you, obeying each of your commands.Â
âI want to ask you something.â Your voice was low. âI want you to tell me what you were thinking about this morning when youâŚâÂ
He throbbed in your hand at the mere memory of it. You felt it, adjusting your pace accordingly.Â
âNo,â he managed, his breath hitching. âItâs not⌠right.âÂ
Your languid massage came to a haltâinstead, you squeezed him so hard that his entire body jerked forward, pleasure and pain becoming one, spreading under his skin.Â
You went on. âI want to know what it would be like. If weâŚâÂ
He tried to steady his breathing but you made it very difficult by literally holding him by the balls and looking like a goddess on top of him.Â
âWe never have to do it,â you added softly with a smile. âBut I want to imagine it in my head.âÂ
We never have to do it only Hyunjin had reached the limit. Of what he could prevent. Of his self-control. His temperance had run out.
âNo man should say these things to his wife.â It was too lewd. Too honest. âI fear I would feel compelled to act upon my words. And it wouldnât be right to do so tonight, would it, darling?â
âNot if you do it to silence me,â you breathed. âIt would only be right if you did so because you wanted it so bad that you couldnât help it. Isnât that what almost happened, earlier? Is that why you were so angry this morning?âÂ
He throbbed againâharder this time, moaning as you gave his cock a gentle squeeze. âBabyââÂ
Fuck this.
He had enough of it all. Of trying. Of resisting. Of pretending, even to himself, that he wasnât obsessed with it, with you. He should have loved you hard on your wedding night. He should have loved you hard every night after.
âTell me,â you insisted. But instead of telling you, he lifted you off himâyou stared at him surprised, retreating a little farther.Â
He pushed himself up, splashing water all over the floor in the process, getting out of the bathtub. You turned to him, reaching for his cock againâhard, strainingâand opening your mouth to take him between your lips, but he stopped you, cupping your face instead. âGet up, darling.âÂ
Your eyes widened with anticipation and he had to force air into his lungs as you stood, graceful and sinful at once, your skin covered in goosebumps. Water rolled down your body and he followed it with his gaze. He liked the way the drops slowed down around your stomach before they continued their course, disappearing in the trimmed, silky-soft hair covering your pussy.Â
You stepped out of the bathtub, your arms around his neck to kiss himâhe kissed you back but wrapped your legs around his waist as he lifted you. He should have done so on your wedding night. He should have done so every night after.
âAâAre you sure?â you managed, grinding almost painfully on his erection, kissing and licking his neck, leaving a trail of spit behind. âYouâre not doing it just toââ
He lay you in your bed, dampening the sheets immediately but he didnât care. He held his cock, giving it a few lazy pumps as he kneeled over you. âNo, Iâm not doing it to silence you. Or whatever.â He kissed you. Your thighs. Your mons. Your waist. Your breasts. Your neck. Your lips. âIâm doing it because I canât fucking resist you anymore.âÂ
You whined when he pushed onto your knee to spread your legs for him, holding onto his arms like you were afraid to fall. Were you scared? Turned on? Eager? You looked eagerâdisheveled, with your eyes glazed over, your chest rising and lowering with your small, shallow breaths.
You let out a loud moan when he cupped your pussy, feeling how wet you were and it wasnât from the bath. Your juices stuck to his fingers and the palm of his hand as he massaged you, the tip of his fingers teasing your ass.Â
âFuck fuck fuck fuck fuckââ You sighed, head falling at the back, arching your back. âYes, pleaseââÂ
It would be a lie to say he hadnât thought about this moment a lot. Because he had. Before meeting you and after. Sometimes he was imagining long, elaborate scenarios, and others simply picturing the moment he would work you open and the context didnât matter.
Except it mattered. Context was everything. Context was more important than the act itself. It was with shame that he was towering over you tonight, the flames of the candles around your bed lighting only some parts of youâyour left breast, your waist on the left side, too, your face. You had granted him his forgiveness a little too quickly and it didnât feel quite deserved now. So he would keep begging you for it until he was satisfied. Until he knew he earned it, really earned it.
He clicked his tongue at the sight. âDarling.â He pressed two fingers at your entrance and he swore he could feel your pulse there. He caressed you, smearing your slick all over your pussylips. âNot so fast.â He needed more time.
He would keep begging until he knew he deserved you, which was to say, he would keep begging until his last breath. He didnât need to use words for it. He would put his mouth to a better use than that, whispering his pleas into you.
He lowered himself between your legs, in this sacred place, kissing your inner thighs. Your skin smelled like the jasmine oil you had bathed in but the scent of your pussy was better. Sweeter.Â
âYou want to know what went through my mind this morning?â He inhaled you, pressing his face between your legs, your slick coating his face. You writhed under him, your fists finding his hair. âIt might offend you to know I was frighteningly close to forcing myself onto you.â He lapped at your cunt, teasing you, letting your taste melt into the tip of his tongue. Just little kitten licks, but each of them sent a jolt of lightning directly to his crotch. Each of them made you moan louder than the last.Â
It was true and it felt good to say it while tasting you. It felt good to say it, period.Â
âI wanted to keep you there and spread you open,â he went on, tilting his head to the side a little so he could reach your entrance better. Your cunt fluttered on his tongue, forcing a grunt out of him. âI wanted to watch myself sink into your tight cunt. Wanted to bury myself as deep as I could.âÂ
You cried out, your hand closing into a fist in his hair, pressing him closer, rolling your hips to meet his tongue, to rub your clit onto his nose. You were hungry for more but he was hungrier. A craving that could not be explained with words.Â
âI wanted to break you open.â He used two of his fingers to expose you to him. âI wanted to fuck you. And ruin your pretty pussy.â Hyunjin pushed his tongue into your tight hole, licking you, fucking you with it. He did it because he knew you loved it, he knew you lost it every time he did it. But the truth was that it was an out-of-body experience to feel your cunt flutter around his tongue. You arched into his mouth, your voice filling the quiet room. âI thought exactly the same thing the very day I met you. We werenât even married, darling, and I already wanted to ravage you.âÂ
He quickly returned to your cunt, kissing it, fucking it sloppy with his tongue. You were meant to be worshiped. Could you feel that? Could you feel that each swirl of his tongue was a new prayer?Â
He barely heard you over the lewd sounds of his own mouth on you, but he could swear you muttered something like please fucking do it, which made his legs go limp a little. He groaned, taking himself in one hand to soothe the aching pressure he felt at his core. Eager. So fucking eager, and impatient. Acting innocent earlier with your we donât have to do it, knowing fully he would. Knowing he had no wish for restraint anymore.
No, of course, you werenât like that, were you? You wouldnât torture him this way. But you were hungry for cock, and it was driving him properly insane.
He emerged from between your legs out of breath, your juices dripping all over his chin. âYou really donât know, do you?â God, you were so fucking wet. And he wasnât even really drunk anymoreâyet he felt lightheaded, like he was barely more than a cock and a mouth and a heart that loved you endlessly. âYou ask for something but you donât know if youâll be able to handle it.â He meant that. As though to prove his point, he lay his tongue flat on your folds, taking one firm lick, slurping on you like you were the most extravagant dessert. Which, well, was exactly what you were. He was certain he could live off your cunt and only your cunt. You were the only sustenance required to keep him alive. âIf I had my way with you, you would have blacked out while I made you mine.âÂ
You clenched around nothing, pressing your thighs together, pressing his head harder in between them. Concupiscent his ass. You were straight-up horny. But he had known this about you for a while now, hadnât he? He just hadnât let that information sink inâtruly sink inâin order to protect you. Or himself. Both, perhaps.Â
âI have to relax you before,â he explained. He was leaking already. âDo you understand, darling?âÂ
He glanced at you in time to see you nodâyou propped yourself up on your elbows to get a better look at him, making it impossible for him not to smile. Even in this light, he could see your beauty. Hell, it could have been daylight or completely dark that it wouldnât have made a difference. Your beauty transcended all human senses.Â
âDonât hold back,â he warned you, returning to his post, his purpose, his home. He pushed a single finger into your dripping holeâfarther than he ever had before, just past the second knuckle. He felt it in his crotch when you clenched around him, writhing and whimpering desperately.Â
He gave your clit a kiss first, a gentle one, massaging your walls with his finger.Â
And then he unleashed himself on you.Â
Hugging your clit in his plush lips, he licked and sucked onto it, regularly changing his tempo, fucking you with his finger at the same time, speaking sins and miracles into your cunt. The way you pulled his hair to fuck yourself onto his face made him want to die or something like it. He almost came when he felt a deep throb within you. You were close, too.Â
He rotated his wrist, inserting a second finger insideâand almost lost his sanity because of it. How tight were you even? You wouldnât be able to take his cock, would you? He wouldnât even be able to put half of it in your virgin pussy.Â
Your voice turned into pretty staccato moans when he found the soft spot he was looking for. You couldnât stop clenching around his fingers, so he licked at your clit, obeying its demands, wishing nothing but to fulfill his function.Â
âYes, oh yes, oh my godââ You werenât making much sense, but the sound of your voice almost brought tears to his eyes. Beautiful.
His wife. His woman.
He applied a bit more pressure in both placesâyour clit and the sensitive spot inside your cunt, moaning with you as you ascended, rubbing his cock onto the mattress.Â
He did not stop when you cameâyou were convulsing almost violently on the bed, pleasure taking over you, crying out, your cunt pulsing under him. You gushed onto his face, coating it with your sweet, sweet, sweet cream. He stopped breathing, becoming one with you, letting your orgasm move him, too. Letting the high tide take him. Gradually, you came to a stop and he followed you into stillness too, only removing his fingers once he was certain your high had receded.Â
You collapsed on the bed, breathing heavily, the scent of your cunt all over him and this room.Â
He was well aware that simply thinking such a thing was a cardinal sin, but he knew that if angels made love and had orgasms, they looked just like you when you did. Sounded like you. Felt like you. Tasted like you, too.
He couldnât see it in the dark, but he knew that a special treat was now pooling at your entrance. His special treat. His reward for helping you reach rapture. He waited a few seconds while you were resting before selfishly lapping at your entrance once more, collecting your juices, slurping and swallowing them, swallowing you.Â
You came back gentlyâhe felt your hand in his hair again, caressing him lovingly now. He smiled as he drank the last of you, not wasting any time before he climbed up onto you so he could share your taste. You looked fucked out, your skin was hot and feverish, and he kissed you hard. He could feel you tasting yourself, seeking the sweetness in his mouth. He throbbed at that. He was no longer reigning over his own body for you were the queen sitting at the throne.
You pulled away, looking him in the eyes as best you could in the dark. You touched his face. He was feverish too, sweat pooling at his temples, his hair stuck in all sorts of places.
âWe donât have to,â you whispered for the second time that night, with a sweet smile on your lips and, if he wasnât making things up, tears in your eyes. âI love you, Hyunjin.âÂ
âI love you too, darling.â His leaking cock rested on your pussy, as it usually did when he was making an approximation of love to you. âYou know I love you, right? Donât lie to me.â
He appreciated that you took a few seconds to think about it. You nodded, wiping the corner of your eye. âI do.â
Hyunjin leaned down to kiss your forehead. And then he kissed the tears on your cheeks. You wrapped your arms around him, pulling him closer.Â
âAre you saying we donât have to because you donât want to, baby?â He gave your lips a kiss, too. âBecause itâs okay.â
You shook your head vigorously. âNo! No, I want to.â As though to prove your point, you wrapped your legs around his waist, the two of you becoming completely intertwined. But it was more than just your bodiesâit was your souls that were entangled, too.
âBut youâre crying.â He hated it when you cried. It was as though each tear was a thousand years of torture.Â
âIâm crying but Iâm not sad.â You held his face with both hands. âIâm not even scared. I'm happy.âÂ
He sort of wanted to cry, too so he understood what you meant. Tonight really was special. It was strange to know he was currently creating one of the most beautiful memories in his life, one that he would cherish even when he would be old. Perhaps especially when he would be old. He smiled. âYouâll have to tell me if I hurt you.âÂ
âYou will hurt me,â you said with conviction. âI want it to hurt.âÂ
He grunted, burying his face in your hair while he recovered from that lethal plea. You caressed his back, his waist, his ass, dragging your fingernails along his skin, tickling him all over.Â
There wasnât much left of the flames on the candles, which meant he had limited time. Because if there was one thing all of his fantasies had in common, it was that he truly, profoundly wished to look into your eyes as he fucked you. When he claimed you.
âDarling,â he began, âI want you to look at me.âÂ
You did, your eyes finding his when he positioned himself. His heart skipped a few beats when he spread you open. He guided himself near your entrance but stayed there. âKeep looking at me. Donât close your eyes.âÂ
He could not wait anymore. It felt like he had waited a thousand years. It felt like it was the only way, maybe, you would truly understand the love he had for you. If he fucked it into you. Â
âI love you,â you said again as he ever so slightly pushed the tip of his cock inside you. Barely. Not even an inch.Â
But he caught on fire nonetheless.Â
It took all of the composure in the world not to buck his hips violentlyâhe had reached nirvana. He had ascended somewhere higher than heaven. Somehow, he could taste love and lust. He could hear colors maybe.Â
âI love you,â he managed, his cock throbbing dangerously.Â
He moved a little, sinking deeper into your heat, his cock engulfed by your tight warmth. His eyelids fluttered as blood rushed to his crotch but it felt like his heart was sinking and was beating somewhere there, astray but more powerful than ever.
You were so wet, so snug around him, your eyes not leaving him, your pretty mouth parted open as you took more and more of him. It was becoming difficult for him to move now. âRelax baby,â he muttered, retreating a little.Â
âDo it,â you begged, your fingernails sinking into his back. âTake me, please.â
He caressed your folds, each of his moves slow and purposeful. âAgain.âÂ
He sank into your warmth once more, not forcing it but making sure all of his tip had disappeared. âYouâre so fucking wet,â he commented, hissing through his teeth.Â
He kissed you, deeply, trying to say something with his tongue for which he could not find the words. You kissed him back, undulating your hips gently.Â
He made sure it was as unhurried as it could possibly be. Hyunjin guided his cock into your intimacy, sinking into your dripping hole.Â
âDeeper,â you whined, spreading yourself more for him.
âShhh, baby.â He caressed your cheek, thrusting into you with more strength finally, stretching your virgin cunt open, moving in shallow thrusts, patiently. Yet impatiently. These few seconds appeared to him much longer than all of his existence so far.
It was better than anything he had ever thought it would be. Not because you were tight and not because you were soaking wet for him, and not even because you were a virgin and he was about to claim your chastity, the crumbs of innocence you had left. You were better than any whiskey, making him drunker than liquor ever could. Because he loved you. Because he had you. And he wouldnât want his life to be any other way. It didnât matter the pain that he went through if it meant that he got to be with you in the end.Â
If given the choice, he would do it all over again so that he could be here with you, tonight, his aching cock forcing itself inside you.Â
You cried out when he met resistanceâhe came to a stop, his heartbeat echoing in his ears.Â
âDonât close your eyes,â he breathed. âJust look at me.âÂ
He pulled away a little only to thrust back into you. And then he did it again. And again. Kindly. Slowly. You struggled with keeping your eyes open but you did so anyway, your moans more beautiful than any music as he fucked you into his woman.Â
He would compare it to the feeling of jerking awake in the middle of the night, feeling like he was falling from the sky. That strange feeling of losing his balance, his senses, of not knowing where he was or where he was going.
Yes. It felt just like that when he breached you open.
He saw it in your eyes for just a second. Pain, pleasure, surprise. Ecstasy. You gasped, clenching around him, your fingernails cutting the skin of his back. He observed you the way some observed masterpieces in galleries, taking it all in, noticing the subtleties, engraving the beauty in his mind so that it would remain there forever. You looked at him like you had been falling, too, and like he was the only thing you could hold onto. You looked at him like you were seeing him for the first time. For the thousandth time.Â
âFUCKââ Nothing could even compare to you. How tight you were. How well you took him. How beautiful you were with your flushed cheeks and the tip of your tongue resting on your bottom lip.Â
Hyunjin moved inside you, stretching you some more, finally bottoming out. He looked down, barely seeing anything but enough to be aware that his cock was buried deep inside you. He stayed there, returning to your face, to your mouth. Just lips on lips, your breath tickling his skin, the spasms of your pussy calming down with you as you adjusted to his size.Â
âAre you okay?â he asked under his breath, not sure whether he was or not. âTalk to me.âÂ
âYâYes.â You inhaled and exhaled a few times but it didnât seem to have much of an effect. Hyunjin could feel your pulse through your skin. âFuck me, Hyunjin.âÂ
You would kill him someday.Â
âSpread your legs a little more for me, yeah?â He adjusted himself to be more comfortable as he kissed you. Your mouth, smooth and wet, still tasted like your pussy.
He didnât break the kiss as he resumed his thrusts, barely moving at first. You jerked your hips underneath, attempting to fuck yourself onto him. He didnât let youânot right now. He held you down by your waist, slowly pumping in and out of you, and the dance began. Because it was much like it, a danceâbut so was just about everything beautiful, wasn't it?
Hyunjin remained calm for a while, fucking you slowly yet relentlessly, his body over yours and your hands all over him, feeling him, his abdomen, his arms, even his cock as he fucked you with it. Like you were trying to learn him the way you would learn a language or a trade. Or a dance.Â
âYouâre soâso big,â you moaned before biting into his shoulder as his fucking picked up a pace. As he slammed into you a little harder, but not nearly as hard as he could, or wanted to.Â
He had thought it would be easy to ruin you but he had been wrong. You were the most precious thing in this world, and each cry tortured him to no end while, also, filling him with the highest pleasure he had ever experienced.
âFuck me. Like that. YesââÂ
He did, obeying your command as he was meant to, stuffing you with his cock. His gentle thrusts blended into another shade of red when your gasps turned into long, erotic moans. He danced with you harder, faster, pounding into your dripping pussy, driving himself insane, driving himself close to his high.Â
âTake it. Take my cock.â He was begging you in strangled groans.Â
âYes, please, yes!âÂ
He didnât want it to stop. He never wanted this moment to endâhe was ready to explode but he wished this night would last forever. It was all he ever wanted. To be balls deep into your cunt, your voice echoing in the room, the lewd sounds of your bodies colliding like music to his ears. He slowed down, taking some time to kiss your neck, your bare shoulder, to inhale the scent of your hair, to taste your pussy on your lips.Â
âBaby.â You pressed your hands on his ass in an attempt at pushing him into your pussy again. Eager. So eager. âDonât stop.âÂ
He needed a minute or an eternity. He was experiencing true bliss for the first time in his life, buried into your wetness, making his peace with whatever demons had been haunting him before.
When he failed to give you what you wished for, you did something that surprised him beyond wordsâyou hooked your leg around his, rolling over and taking him with you until he was lying flat on his back. At one point in the maneuver, he slipped out from your soaked cunt and the air felt cold and brutal around him. He missed you immediately. It felt like he was lacking something, like he had lost an organ.Â
Before he knew it, you were straddling him, panting, reaching for his cock to put it back where it belonged.Â
It dawned on him then. As if he could see it all clearly, finally. You were his wife. You were the girl he had written letters to all his life. You were the girl who sent him letters all his life, too. You were the woman he married, the woman he had desired for years. The person he had loved all this time, the one he belonged with, the one he belonged to. And you were on top of him, claiming him just as much as he was claiming you. Time came to a stop when he realized that his wildest dreams had come true.
You sank onto his straining cock, taking more of it inch by inch, getting used to feeling him this way. You came to a stop when you were completely sitting on him, clenching violently. You were going to milk him. You were going to fuck his soul out of him.Â
You rolled your hips tentatively once just to see what it was like. Then you did it again with a little more determination. And again. And againâsoon enough, you were riding him in powerful, needy movements, accompanied by equally needy moans. Fuck. He was doomed.
Hyunjin snapped when you lay your hands flat on his chest, using another angle to take even more of him.Â
âAlready greedy,â he muttered, fucking you from below. âLook at the way you take my cock.âÂ
Like a pro. Like your body had always known his.Â
âTake it. Use me, baby. Take what you need.â Hyunjin was closeâhis cock throbbed every two or three seconds and he couldnât hold for much longer, certainly not with you on top of him like that, bouncing on his cock.Â
He squeezed your tits, caressed your tummy, held your waist. He cried out when the speed of your riding increased, when your voice turned into desperate little gasps.Â
âTake it.â You were using him. Abusing him. Edging yourself on his aching cock. âCum on my cock, darling.âÂ
He grabbed your waist to guide the rolls of your hips, pushing you up and down on him, using you the same way you were doing with him. He was close. His vision was blurredâhe had already started to melt into the mattress beneath him, his entire life dictated by the intoxicating sensation of your tight cunt undulating up and down his length.Â
His pretty wife. His beekeeper wife. No longer a virgin but a cock-hungry, desperate seductress with whom he was hopelessly in love.Â
The pressure in his abdomen became too muchâhis muscles tightened as he felt himself toppling over the edge. He saw sparks. He felt them, too, all over him.Â
Hyunjin let out a long, drawn-out moan when he came, back arching into you, hips stuttering, pleasure shattering him in pieces. He spilled himself inside you, spurting thick ropes of cum and filling you with them. You fucked it all deeper inside you as you came, too, your pussy fluttering, your upper body collapsing onto him, your hips moving with your orgasm, obeying it. He didnât think this amount of cum ever came out of him beforeâhe was still twitching and leaking when you came to a stop, spent and content and exhausted. Much like him.Â
Neither of you moved for a long time, long enough for all the candles to run out of wax, turning the room completely dark in the night.Â
It wasnât just dark. It was quietâvery quiet. And Hyunjin realized it was the same in his mind, too. For the first time in a long, long timeâthere wasnât a voice shouting or whispering vile things in his head. There was nothing, only light, only love. Only you.Â
You climbed down his softening cock but it was only so you could curl up in his armsâstill, it felt just as erotic as making love to you when his seed dripped out of you, some of it landing on his skin, lukewarm and sticky.Â
He held you close, the both of you sweaty, beautiful messes.Â
âI hope I didnât hurt you too much, darling.â He smiled, kissing your forehead.
It wasn't just that it was quiet in his mindâhis chest was lighter, too.Â
You hummed softly, your eyes closed, lulled to sleep by the rush of pleasure you experienced. âNot too much.â You opened your eyes but barely. âI didnât think it would feel this big inside me,â you admitted. âBut I loved it.âÂ
Hyunjin blushed, pressing you against him, keeping you there. If he could have it his way, neither of you would ever have to leave this bed.Â
"Did I do alright?" you asked sleepily.
"Alright?" He held you tighter, kissing your forehead. "You fucked the life out of me, darling."
You giggled, the both of you comforted.
His slumber was dreamless, and yet he never ceased to feel your presence, even in his sleep.
It was sunlight that woke him up the next morningâfor a few seconds, he thought it all must have been a dream, that it couldn't possibly have been true. Except you were still exactly in the same spot, naked, with light bruises on your waist where he held you, last night, as he rammed into you. There was more coloring at your neck where he sucked the skin too hard.Â
You woke up too, smiling as you remembered the night before. He was about to kiss you when you looked at him with wide eyes like you had just gotten an epiphany. You sat up in your bed quickly, pushing yourself to the side, observing the mattress.Â
âOh my god,â you uttered, your voice raw from all your pleased screams and moans of the night before. âHyunjin, we really did put way too much.âÂ
He didnât get it at first. Only when he sat up, too, did he see the same thing as you, which was the faintestâand it was really, really faintâpinkish-red stain on your white silk sheets. There were a lot of other stains, and to him it looked no different than staring at a piece of art, for they were remnants of his lovemaking with you.Â
Still, he chuckled with you, amused by your shock and at the way you covered your mouth, remembering your wedding night and his subterfuge. âOh,â he simply said, admiring your body now. He had never felt any particular way when he entered a church, no matter how much he had been told of the sanctity of this place. But, looking at you, he understood what he ought to have been feeling all this time. His holy place. You were the goddess and the church at once, absolving him of all his sins, forcing him into sinning, hearing his grateful prayers and making him plea for mercy.Â
The same pinkish-red spread on your cheeks, delightful to see. âIâm so embarrassed now,â you pouted, hiding your face in your hands. âEveryone saw it! Oh no!â
He couldnât help but laugh, following you into your lavatory as you fled the scene as though it would diminish your shame. He chased you, catching you by the waist and lifting you onto the counter to sit you down there. He kissed youâyour mouth tasted like old water and the ghost of your pussy had lingered on your lips. âYouâre okay, darling. They donât matter.âÂ
And he meant it. Hell, for the first time, he really did mean it.Â
That adorable pout didnât leave your face. However, you played with his hair while he covered your breasts in kisses.âWe need a bath,â you pointed out. âWeâre disgusting.âÂ
Your bathtub was still full of last nightâs water. Hyunjin was supposed to leave for his business trip soon, but he had more important things to do, which were to wash up and have breakfast with you.
Or have you for breakfast.Â
He had never in his life before felt so alive. He had never before wished for immortality. He would not have enough of a mere mortal lifetime to love you.Â
âLetâs get dressed and have a bath in my room, yeah?â he suggested. âAnd then we canââ
You bit your lip, looking somewhere down his chest, smiling coyly. âCan we⌠you know? Again?âÂ
âYes, my darling. Again and again.â He tucked a strand of hair behind your ear, taking in the sight of you. He had seen you wear luxurious gowns, he had seen your hair braided elegantly. But you had never been as beautiful as you were now.Â
That day was the first day in Hyunjinâs life where he felt absolutely no dread, no gloom. From the moment he woke up in your cum-stained bed to the moment he fell asleep much later at night, in a different city after painfully parting from you, all that he held within him was peace. Peace and elation.Â
He had held you close, very close, and you hadnât broken into pieces. It had been distance that almost ruined it all, and Hyunjin would die before he let anything get in between you two again.Â
âYou really are a little too cheery, brother.â
Hyunjin glared at Jungkook, elbowing him on his left side to shut him up. âDonât call me that in front of people,â he muttered between his teeth. âActually donât call me that at all. Ever.â
âYouâre no fun at all, Hwang.â Jungkook rolled his eyes, turning to the rest of the group who were having a completely unrelated discussion and not paying them any mind.Â
It was a splendid autumn evening, with a descending sunset and a cool breeze, making the walk from the hotel where he, Changbin, and Christopher stayed, quite pleasant and even invigorating. After three days of mentally draining business meetings and futile dinners with investors, Hyunjin had decided to prolong the trip a little, to go hunting among other things. Well, he didnât really want to at first, but you insisted.
âIt might be the only opportunity you get to do such a thing with Lord Christopher before he becomes a father,â you pointed out. âKnowing him, I doubt he will stay away from his wife and child much.âÂ
You were right, of course. So Chris had joined him, Changbin, and Jungkook for a short hunting trip, and Hyunjin was trying very hard to focus on all of that instead of remembering how it felt to sink inside youâŚ
âAre you even listening to me?â Jungkook waved his hands just inches short of Hyunjinâs face to bring him back to the present moment. âDamn. Are you sure youâre quite alright?â He turned to the other two. âDid he hit his head or something?âÂ
Changbin shrugged while Christopher hid his smile. âHeâs not telling us either, so I donât know what his problem is.âÂ
Jungkook gave Hyunjin a look that was a little too knowing, but he couldnât possibly know anything about his current state of mind, so Hyunjin brushed it off as regular jungkookesque behavior.
âIâm listening,â Hyunjin said impatiently. âI said I didnât mind going, I just wish you would have told me about this dinner before I left. We would have packed better, more appropriate clothes.â
Jungkook waved a dismissive hand. âDonât worry about it. Teddy isnât like that. Iâve known him a long time and he's even less lordly than I am.âÂ
âWell he mustnât be very lordly at all then,â Hyunjin pointed out, causing Chris and Changbin to burst into laughter. Even Jungkook smiled reluctantly at the joke, pretending to be offended by it.
After spending most of the day outside huntingâand not catching anything, not even a hareâJungkook had declared that the four of them had been formally invited for dinner at the residence of an old friend of his. He hadnât really called him his friend, suggesting he was mostly an acquaintance. To Hyunjin, he had admitted to meeting him at a sex party. âBut he had a girl on his cock and another was on the girlâs cunt, so we didnât talk all that much.âÂ
Which did not make Hyunjin eager at all to meet Jungkookâs not-friend, but he apparently had a great collection of weapons that both Chris and Changbin really wanted to see. He had longswords and maces and even a few katanas, or so Jungkook claimed. Hyunjin figured, considering the manâs political influence, that he might be able to negotiate something out of it, or at least to make a good impression. Maybe it would serve a purpose one day.Â
Which brought him to tonight. He followed the three other men, listening a little to Jungkookâs insane sex parties stories or his personal description of a few of the weapons they were about to see. But really Hyunjin was wondering what you were doing. It would be your birthday soon and he had found lovely gifts for you. He couldnât wait to give them to you, to share them with you.Â
It took little time to reach their destination, which was a large townhouse in a posh neighborhood of the city. They were greeted by Jungkookâs friend himself, and despite his discontentment with the outfit he was wearing, Hyunjin made sure to use his best manners.Â
âI am so pleased to meet you, Lord Hwang,â the man said as he let them inside, away from the cold air. He was tallâtaller than him evenâand had chestnut-brown hair. âI heard a lot about you.â
âI have also heard a lot about you, Lord Grover.â Hyunjin dipped his head politely. After all, it wasnât every day that he entered the home of an Earl. âThank you for hosting us. I only wish we dressed more appropriately for the occasion.âÂ
âI see nothing wrong with the way you are clothed, gentlemen.âÂ
The houseâs steward made an appearance then, bowing deeply as he saluted his guests.Â
Grover turned to him. âIsaki, have you prepared the parlor as I requested?âÂ
âYes, my lord,â the young manâa boy, reallyâreplied. âIâve also brewed some tea.âÂ
Hyunjin knew he wouldnât like Grover when he failed to thank his steward, letting young Isaki walk away after announcing tea. His gaze crossed Christopherâs and he saw the same displeasure as his own in it. The two of them seemed to have the same taste when it came to people.
Jungkook and Lord Grover caught up while he was giving them a tour of the house. This was only his secondary residence, which he kept for business and political purposes. He had a large estate in the countryside, somewhere a little down south.Â
âIsnât this the region where your lady wife is from, Hwang?â Jungkook asked as they walked into the empty dining room. And Hyunjin knew, from the shape of his mouth, that he almost called him brother again.
He tsked, letting his reaction pass as something other than annoyance. âYes, yes it very much is,â he managed, observing the many paintings adorning the walls. Two of them were by famous masters and he couldnât pretend he wasnât impressed.Â
âAh, yes, indeed!â Lord Grover grinned. âAs she might have told you, Lord Hyunjin, she and I have met on one occasion and attended the same events a few times. Naturally, her chaperone wouldnât let her anywhere near me at that point,â he added.Â
Hyunjin felt that new information fall into his stomach like a rock into a lake. He stayed still, his eyes still fixated on the stunning nighttime scenery painted by James Wright he stood by. The moon, and the light radiating from it, were absolutely stunning.Â
âI wouldnât think she told you of the time we met,â Grover went on. âBut I wish to congratulate you on your wedding, no matter how late. Have you been enjoying married life? Or is married life the reason youâre visiting the city? There are many reputable⌠tourist spots.âÂ
Hyunjin clenched his jaw, focusing on the details of the painting. Each leaf was painted in detail, it seemed, giving the impression they were swaying in a soft breeze. Was he crazy, or was this man taunting him?
âWeâre here for business, Lord Grover,â Changbin responded in his place. âI must say, Lord and Lady Hwang form a strong pair.âÂ
âSeconded,â Christopher added. âLord Grover, is that what I think it is?âÂ
Christopher pretended to be fascinated by an antique chair in a corner, giving Hyunjin some respite. He was doing everything he could to stay calm, only, he could never be calm when it was about you. He didnât like that you had met this guy before. When exactly? And in what circumstances?Â
Why hadnât you told him?
He forced himself to take a deep breath. Of course, you couldnât possibly have listed every person you ever met. The reason Hyunjin never heard about him, most likely, was that the encounter wasnât particularly significant. Right?
Before he could finish ruminating over this, the short tour of the dining room was over. âTeddy, they really wanted to see the katanas,â Jungkook said with a smirk.
âWith all due respect, Lord Jungkook,â Christopher began, a playful smile on his face, âI believe you expressed quite a lot of excitement at the idea yourself.âÂ
âI swear to god these guys donât give me a single break.â Jungkook sighed dramatically. It was at that moment that Isaki made a second appearance.Â
âTea is ready, my lords,â he said, dipping his head and keeping his eyes on the ground. âThe parlor is this way.â
âWeâll dine in the parlor if you gentlemen donât mind,â Lord Grover explained. âItâs a simple, casual meal, and Iâd much rather we all make ourselves comfortable.â He paused, his big, dark eyes dancing from him, to Jungkook, and back to him. âLords Jungkook and Hyunjinâmy mother expressed the wish to meet you. She is aging and very ill, so she will not be joining us for supper.âÂ
No matter how upset he was, Hyunjin could only feel empathy for that fact. He knew that a son never really got over the loss of his motherâand Theodore had lost his father about ten years ago or so, becoming Earl when he was only twenty-one. He could relate to that, no matter how untrusting he was of the man.
âOf course,â Jungkook said at once. âTeddy, tell meâhas her condition worsened?âÂ
Grover gave him a nod, a grave expression on his face. âThe doctor says she doesnât have much time left. At the risk of sounding heartless, I have to admit Iâd rather it didnât last for too long. There is no need for suffering when there is nothing to gain from it.âÂ
âIâm terribly sorry to hear this.â Hyunjin dipped his head politely. âLetâs go meet her so that she can rest for the night afterward.âÂ
âIsaki, can you please show Lord Christopher and Mister Changbin to the parlor? Donât wait up, tooâdrink the tea while itâs hot.âÂ
The group parted in two halves and Hyunjin followed Theodore into a narrow corridor to the left. Jungkook walked with them, the three of them remaining quiet, out of respect. Hyunjin couldnât shake the uneasy feeling in his chest, like a darkness looming, and he didnât like it. He tried to blame it on Jungkookâs insane stories about those parties he attended with Grover, only that didnât help much.Â
They quickly reached their destination, which was a large bedroom in which Theodoreâs mother lay on a single bed. The rest of the room was furnished with couches and armchairs, suggesting the woman was accustomed to welcoming guests into this room. It was dark at first, so Hyunjin helped Theodore when he lit up a few oil lamps.Â
âHello, Mother,â he told her as he brought one of the lamps to her bedside table. âWere you sleeping? Our guests are here.â
The woman was thin and her skin was pale with a waxy aspect to it. Her son helped her sit up in her bed while Hyunjin and Jungkook waited politely behind. She seemed rather unwell yet she gave Theodore a smile when he adjusted her pillows. The entire room smelled like illness and camphor.Â
âLady Grover.â As the eldest, Jungkook spoke first, going as far as getting on one knee.
Hyunjin mirrored him, out of respect for the woman who was visibly at the end of her life. âGood evening, Lady Grover.â Her hair was somewhere between gray and copper, but it was dull and frizzy, lacking care and health.
It took quite a while for her to say anythingâby the time he and Jungkook were standing upright again, she was squinting, staring at both of them intensely as if she was trying to decode them. Theodore remained by her side but let her speak first.
Then, finally, her gaze came to a stop, lingering on Hyunjin. âBy god, Teddy, he looks exactly like him.â She brought a weak, shaky hand over her shriveled, dry lips. âCome closer, young man. Please.âÂ
Hyunjin was aware of the way Jungkook was gawking at him from the side, only he was too preoccupied to try and translate his body language. It wasnât the first time such a scene occurred and yet he despised it every single time. He would sometimes be at an event, having dinner with clients, and a complete stranger would come up to him to strike up a conversation, mentioning how they knew exactly who he was because he looked so much like his father.Â
But he knew better than to disrespect a lady like her, so he crossed the room, coming to stand next to Lord Grover. He couldnât find a single thing to say.Â
âOh, heavens!â Lady Groverâs eyes filled up with tears and unrest took control of him, the weight of this invisible, impending doom now tangible in the air. âCloser, young man, let me see you.âÂ
He didnât initially reactâtoo surprised by the situation, Hyunjin stood there, quiet, the gears of his mind going faster with each passing second. At that moment, he remembered that fateful visit to Jeon Manor a few months ago and coming face to face with Lady Myeong in a hallway, moments before dinner. The look on her face had been quite unforgettable, like she had just seen a ghost. You have your fatherâs eyes, Lord Hwang, she had told him. And his allure, too.Â
Hyunjin twisted his neck, searching for Jungkookâs eyes, trying to see if he was thinking the same thing he was. And by the looks of itâhe was, indeed, sharing his fear.Â
Before he knew it, Lady Grover grabbed his hands, squeezing them in hers. Nothing about the gesture was inherently wrongâshe held him lovingly, even, and he didnât mind the cold of her skin or the fact that he could feel her bones through her flesh. It was the look on her face that frightened him.Â
âOh, trulyâŚâ He lowered himself closer to the woman, unsure of what to do. Big tears were rolling down her bony cheeks. âYou might just be even more handsome than he was, but itâs undeniable,â she told Hyunjin. âI have missed your father every day since the last time he and I were together.âÂ
He heard footsteps behind himâJungkook had come closer yet remained at the back respectfully.Â
âThey all said such atrocious things about him,â Lady Grover went on, her shoulders shaking with her cries. âBut they didnât know him like I did.â
âMy father made bad decisions,â Hyunjin conceded. That had been a response that Christopher taught him when both of them were still young Back then, Hyunjin was under his tutelage after his fatherâs death.Â
She shook her head. âNo, child. They did not understand him. How could they understand him when he never let them see his true colors? The colors of his spirit?âÂ
She looked somewhere behind him. âYou too, Lord Jeon. You have the eyes and the cheekbones.âÂ
She was jumping from one topic to another and yet making her point very, very clear, without having the need to speak it out loud. It was obvious that this woman had known his father intimately. Very much so. How many women like her were there?Â
âNobody knew him better than I did,â she let go of Hyunjinâs hands, gesturing weakly at the empty space by her bed. âThey took him away from me. Away. I didnât have a choice.âÂ
Her cries intensified, causing a violent episode of coughingâHyunjin retreated while Theodore attempted to help his mother drink some water. A couple of nurses rushed into the room, asking them to leave. Stunned, Hyunjinâs feet managed to get him out of the room but he stopped when he found himself in the hallway with Jungkook and Theodore.Â
âWhatâs the meaning of this, Teddy?â Jungkook inquired. He looked upset and he wasnât easily moved, which said a lot about the gravity of the situation.Â
âI heard so much of this Lord Hwang after my⌠father passed,â Grover said with a shrug. âIt only made sense to me that my mother met his son while she still can.â The intonation with which he said the word son didnât please Hyunjin. âThank you for indulging her. Shall we join the others for dinner?âÂ
Hyunjin walked slowly, staying behind, deep in his thoughts. The implications of his short encounter with Lady Grover were quite evident. She had clearly known him intimatelyâin a way nobody else, not his mother, not himself, had. The new piece of information left him speechless, although Hyunjin knew he ought not to be surprised by it. How many mistresses did he have? Did they all believe he loved them? That he wasnât using them?Â
How many illegitimate children had he fathered?Â
He could not stop staring at Theodore now, not even after they reached the parlor and sat down on plush armchairs around a coffee table covered with food. It wasnât just in the way he looked. It was in the way he held himself too, and the shape of his mouth when he smiled. It was unequivocal though, and he could not unsee it. The deep shade of brown of his eyes and his honeyed skin.Â
Hyunjin spoke very little and ate even less, letting the others fill the conversation and only talking when directly spoken to. He was trying to put his thoughts in order. He was trying to convince himself he had nothing to fear from Theodore Groverâthat should they have the same father, there would be no consequences to it.
The plates of food got emptied and maids came to clean up the table while Isaki was serving scotch, but Hyunjin was still trying to imagine all of the ways he could harm him, should the earl decide to. It would make no sense to even tryanything. Hyunjinâs estate prospered well, sure, but if Grover somehow came after him, claiming to be a Hwang, he would lose everything. His title, his land. Hell, his reputation too.Â
As the other men drank, Hyunjin sat there, wondering what would compel Grover to claim anything he owned as his.Â
The response came to him when Theodore invited them to follow him to his roofed terrace. He liked to smoke a cigar after dinner, apparently. âAnd Jungkook knows I get the best imported cigars,â he pointed out.
âYeah, because you control the docks.â Jungkook rolled his eyes.
âIf thatâs alright with you, Lord Grover,â Chris began, âIâll stay behind. I have no wish to smoke any cigars, and I do enjoy looking at your stunning collection here.âÂ
Grover nodded. âOf course. Then perhaps I should ask the entertainment to come in now instead of later?â He turned to his steward who was standing quietly in a corner of the room. âIsaki, get them.âÂ
The women entered the room as Theodore was grabbing his smoking paraphernalia from a drawer. Five of themâno, six. Young and obedient, they listened to the earlâs command when he asked them to stand in a row before them.Â
Hyunjin averted his gaze, fighting a strong spell of nausea. He had to get out of here. He had to get the fuck away from this man.Â
âChoose whichever you like, gentlemen,â Grover said with a smirk. âTheyâre all quite skilledâI tested them, so Iâd know.âÂ
A very heavy and uncomfortable silence grew in the room. It felt like Hyunjin had something stuck in his throat preventing him from breathing as much air as he needed. He hated this. It wasnât even the first time such a thing happened, but it was the first time since, well, you.Â
His unease did not stem from a desire to spend time with any of the prostitutes. What he feared was that you would hear something that you wouldnât like and that you wouldnât believe him if he told you nothing had taken place. He couldnât bear to lose you.Â
He couldnât bear to hurt you. Not any more than he already had.
âIâm leaving.â Hyunjin stood, the words escaping him before he could really think about it. âThank you for your hospitality, Lord Grover, but I will return to the hotel.â He was quite certain that both Christopher and Changbin would follow him.
He was rightâthey stood, too. But before they could speak, Grover turned to them, making his way towards the girls, all of which wore excessively revealing clothes.
âYou donât have to worry about a thing, Lord Hwang,â he uttered slowly. âI heard of your⌠unique tastes. I requested Mindy here especially for you. Right, sweetheart?â Pushing open the loose robe she was wearing, he revealed her belly, small but roundâshe was visibly with child.
âLord Grover!â Christopher started, but Hyunjin raised his hand to quiet him.
With a calmness he didnât know in himself, Hyunjin reached into the pocket of his blazer to find his gold. Ignoring Grover, he crossed the room, giving each woman a substantial amount of money. âThank you, ladies,â he said politely. âI believe this pays for your evening and more. You may leave.â
They all looked at each other, visibly frightened, but Hyunjin did not look away from Groverâs eyes, who was staring back with a defiant expression on his face. It took quite a while before he told them, âYou heard the man. Leave. Iâll simply let your madam know that she ought to send me something better next time I host these guests.âÂ
âThere wonât be a next time,â Hyunjin retorted as the women quickly scuttled out of the room. âIt was a pleasure meeting you, Lord Grover. I shall pray for your mother.âÂ
Without waiting for a response, Hyunjin turned his heels and walked away. To his surprise, Jungkook was also going after him as well as Christopher and Changbin.Â
âYou havenât even asked me how I met her,â Lord Grover exclaimed with a joyless laugh. âYour wife. I wish you had at least asked me, I was dying to tell you.âÂ
Hyunjin stopped right in his tracks, very well aware that he ought to be better than this. That he ought to display more class than this bastard.Â
âLetâs go,â Changbin muttered through gritted teeth, but Hyunjin did not budge.Â
He faced Grover once again. âYou met her. What about it?â he asked him. âMy wife is quite remarkable, Iâll agreeâI understand how she would have made a strong impression on you. My lord.â
âOh, she is remarkable. And grew into a radiant, exquisite young woman, no doubt.â Grover chuckled, but Hyunjinâs anger was slowly rising within him, reaching dangerous levels. âI went for a visit to her familyâs villa, you see, with my parents. She was still a young girl, properly trained and yet feral. I knew she would never be fully tamed. I noticed her for it, of course. She showed up to the villa barely an hour before the feast would be served, her hands dirty, her hair sticky and messy with honey.âÂ
He leaned against the wall behind him, crossing his arms over his chest, acting out a little too dramatically in his pondering man pose.
âIn any case. First thing I hear after dinner is how her mother wishes to break off her betrothal to a certain Lord Hwang. Her mother comes to my mother, and I just so happen to be in the next room over, from which Mother calls me and asks if I would be inclined to offer this young lady a proper home, should I take her as my wife. What was I to say? I liked her, as undomesticated as she might have been. Too bad her fatherââÂ
Hyunjin didnât hear the rest of his story. He had thrown himself at Grover before he could utter even one more word. His fist closed around the velvet of his collar. His other fist slammed into that classless bastardâs face. There were shouts behind him, even hands trying to grab at him, but Hyunjin did not let go of Grover, not even as he retaliated and punched him back a few times.Â
He did not register the impacts as pain. He did not register them at all, and yet Grover got him square on the lips, almost breaking some teeth in the process, and got his nose, too. How could he. How dare he keep a memory of you at all? You were not his to remember. He was nothing to you.Â
Hyunjin pinned him against the wall, hard enough that the back of Groverâs head hit it, dizzying him momentarily. He had a few weak attempts at punches but Hyunjin dodged them all. Had he ever truly wished to be engaged to you? Had he used those hands to give himself pleasure with the thought of you on his mind?Â
âIf you touch my wifeââ Hyunjin groaned when the taste of blood invaded his mouth. He spit on the ground at Groverâs feet, holding him at the wall with his forearm against his throat. âIf you touch even one strand of her hair, if you dare put your foul eyes on her even just once. Youâll regret it. Youâll fucking regret itââÂ
Hyunjinâs threats were cut short when Christopher successfully pulled him away from Grover.Â
âTake him outside,â Changbin told Chris as though he wasnât even there. âDonât let him come back here.âÂ
His soul didnât feel like it was quite tethered to his body. He had very little control over the slander and threats he shouted on his way outside, held firmly by Christopher. Not even the cold night air calmed him down, not his friendâs pleas, and certainly not reason.Â
The only thing he remembered was you and the secret promise he had made.
He meant it. He would die before he let anything get in between you two again.Â
Authorâs note: Where do I even begin? I looked at the date of the last release of this story and just⌠What can I say. To those who are here today, reading thisâthank you. Thank you for being so patient and for understanding the stupid ways my inspiration works. Thank you for urging me to prioritize my health. I realize now that itâs a lot because I do feel safe taking my time, resting, etc that Iâm able to write happily. This chapter was challenging and a lot of it was by pure fear to disappoint my faithful readers. I hope it was at least a little satisfying. Iâm very glad to be releasing this today.Â
Thank you to those who reblog, who send messages, who interact meaningfully. It is thanks to you that Iâm still on here and that my stories arenât confined to my computer. Please know that your kindness goes a long way for me and to other authors as well. Itâs appreciated and it motivates me every day. Lots of love đ¤
permanent taglist
@abiaswreck ; @aimeexx ; @anylady-fics ; @cb97percent ;
@hwan-g ; @hynjinnnnlvr ; @hyunnie4ever ; @hyvneluv ;
@imseungminsgf ; @karlachsleftbicep ; @leedunno ; @m00n-dream ;
@mmoonriseflowerr ; @palindrome969 ; @rubyshoedpixie ; @shywolfcherryblossom ;
@skzfelixlove ; @suhomylife ; @ven-fic-recs ;Â
altair here. this is the masterlist, where i link all my writings. i write for all the groups listed below. there is no posting schedule.
note: i rarely write smut. donât be surprised if you donât see much of it, i do prefer my content to be sfw, it just makes me feel better. no shade to anyone at all, smut writers are so freakinâ talented.
[ â - in progress || ⥠- oneshot || â - series || â - drabble ]
[âď¸ - smut || âĽď¸ - fluff || â¨ď¸ - angst]
boy groups + soloists
Keep reading
summary: your co-worker has been on your case ever since you've started your time at the company. a strange turn of events and circumstance changes all that.
pairing: coworker! lee know x reader
trope: enemies to lovers <3, office au
genre: slight angst, smut, and fluff
warnings: fem-bodied reader, oral, creampie, overstim, unprotected sex, bulge kink, spitting, etc. 18+ mdni
word count: 9.8k
a/n: a little practice piece for you guys, i hope i did well;; so sorry this took me so long to write :( i also hope it's cohesive enough, i keep writing this fic on and off sleep deprived lol
-
tickâŚ
tockâŚ
tickâŚ
to-
âthe clock isnât going to speed up just because you keep staring at it.â the cubicle beside you chirps in, momentarily shaking you out of your thoughts. by now, youâve trained to pay him no mind as you keep your focus on the clock that reads 4:56 pm, almost taunting you in a way.Â
a few more minutes and youâll be home free for the weekend. maybe you can finally relax and get away from your dreaded paperwork. perhaps look through your shopping apps since you had nothing else better to do for the weekend, or better yet- you could run a well deserved bath with that bath bomb you always wanted to use but never got a chance to. all the possibilities sounded heavenly although all that would have to actually wait until you get home.
one other thing that you had been anticipating all day was having that dinner after work with jeongin- your close friend and coworker from a different department. he had been begging you for ages to finally try that one soba place that opened up nearby with him. you being a good friend, agreed.
âyou might actually melt the clock if you keep doing that yâknow.â your cubicle neighbor- lee minho smirks, now standing and leaning over your workspace.
"what do you want?" pointedly asking him.
"oh, nothing. nothing."
âyou just donât ever shut up, do you?â you deadpan and tilt your chin up to stare at him, minho just offers a sly smirk in return. he always liked to bother and butt into your business for some odd reason.Â
minho shrugs, âitâs fun teasing you. you do that thing where you scrunch your nose when you get riled up.â a vain visibly pops up from your forehead, but turn to your computer, hoping to drown him out with your typing.
you knew better than to give him a reaction. if you had a penny for how many times that particular vein popped from your forehead because of minho, youâd probably be a millionaire by now.
âoh, one more thing-â the brown haired man saunters back to his desk, and comes back to yours with a huge stack of papers. he unceremoniously plops it down, the annoying feline-like grin on his face.Â
âwhatâsâŚthis?â raising an eyebrow at him, you hope it's not what you think he's planning. you have plans. he crosses his arms and pushes his framed glasses back.
âpaperwork, of course.â you wanted to strangle him. âyes, iâm well aware that this is paperwork. why is it now on my desk?â
before you could protest any further, âthey want this finished by next week.â he leans to practically whisper in your ear. minho grins mischievously after he sees your pink flustered face take a step back.
the humongous stack was already on his desk, so your boss most likely assigned it to him in the first place. you furrow your eyebrows and turn to him, worst fear coming true.
"ohh no. not in a million years." you get up from your seat, avoiding the offending pile. he starts going back to his desk, neatly placing his things in it's organizers.
âwhy canât you finish it? you- what are you doing?â but minho was already grabbing his bag and blazer and looking at his wrist watch.
âwould you look at the time- thanks for covering for me!â aaaand he's gone.
plopping down on your chair, you bury your face in your hands, stopping yourself from pulling out hair. frustration creases on your forehead. well, you could kiss that dinner with jeongin goodbye. now you definitely want to strangle him.
-
lee minho. if you were to find a personification of the word annoying, the brunette would certainly be it. that man has done nothing but annoy the hell out of you ever since you started your time in the company. other people in your department often regarded him as one of the most reliable and polite employees here.
you would inwardly scoff at the frequent mention of minho and his apparent âreliable-ness and politenessâ since all he was, was just the opposite. to you at least. it was hard to believe at first.Â
but then you actually saw the way he carried himself with effortlessness and composure, handled business affairs, and how he mingled so seamlessly with fellow colleagues. it was nothing short of professional.
so you had a theory that he was only like that towards you. a complete dick only to you. you although werenât quite sure why.
the girls in your department would often talk about him as well, mostly for his appearance. you really werenât one for gossiping but you would listen in sometimes, curious about what they see in him. it was hard not to when they would gush about their workplace crushes and love lives so openly, a tinge of envy seeps through your bones every time it would be mentioned. you have got to get laid one day.
âheâs totally my type, you think i should ask him out?â your other cubicle neighbor says quite loudly during her break. her friend beside her shakes their head, âno, no you canât.â
âwhy not? isn't he hot and available?â she asks absentmindedly. you start to zone out for a minute, only catching bits and pieces of their conversation. but you contemplate about what she said for a second, you would be lying if you said that lee minho was unattractive.
far from that actually. distinctly remembering catching a few glimpses of him from your first day, intrigued and interest piqued. his sharp nose and cheek bones, features were like sculpted by michaelangelo himself, his toned and lean figure accentuated by the perfectly well fit suit that he always seem to wear.
you definitely found him attractive at first.
that was until he started annoying you, so all of that was quickly out the window.
but you would probably end yourself before admitting that to anyone. you let out a disgruntled sigh, appearance wouldnât really matter if he wasnât such a knob to begin with.Â
as you approached your dimly lit street, all you could think about was that feline faced jerk. what was he thinking, dumping all that work on you last minute? you felt really bad about cancelling on jeongin, texting him earlier about the sudden change of schedule. the dark haired man you've come to know just replies with a little;
'we'll just try again next week lol'
you breathe out a relieved sigh, thankful that he wasn't mad. kicking the pebbles on the side of the road, you imagined that the little rocks were minho's face. you could not wait until you get home.
âstupid paperwork, stupid minho, stupidâŚâÂ
your muttering fades and you suddenly stop in your tracks as your elderly neighbor waves you over from her front door, grandma lee or just grandma- as she insists you call her instead.
you bowed and greeted her, âhi grandma, did you need something?â you were quite close with the sweet old lady, her gray hair swaying lightly in the wind.
the elder would often check up on you after hearing that you traveled all the way from your hometown to the city, almost taking you in as her own. you were grateful for the company since homesickness would often creep up. she would also often bring you comically large jars of kimchi which you appreciated greatly.
she smiles as she gestures to the multiple bags she was holding, "i just need a little help getting these inside the house, dear." you take the heavy bags from her hands. what were in these, rocks? grandma claps her hands together in remembrance.
âhave you had dinner yet? i made extra.â
-
grandma sets a bowl in front of you, the sight of seaweed soup instantly brings you comfort. your stomach grumbles as you dig in. she watches you intently as you practically inhale the soup, starved from the long and terrible day you had.
you sent her a polite questioning look. âi want to ask you for a favor.â she finally starts, flicking through the channels of her tv. the weather was on, the forecaster droning on about rain happening this week in the same monotone voice for the past 10 minutes. you look at her and nod immediately, she had done so much for you, doing a few favors aren't going to hurt.
âdo you have a car, dear?â
blowing on the steaming hot seaweed soup, you nod again at her question, wondering where this conversation is heading.
âi need someone to drive me to my sonâs house tomorrow, i'm staying over there for the weekend and my bags are a little heavy. would that be alright with you, dear?â youâve heard about her family from her stories when she would have you over like now, little bits and pieces. you smile and agree.
a cheshire grin graces your features after a moment.  âwhatâs in it for me?â it was a joke of course, grandma knew it too. having spent a large amount of time with her, your humor mustâve rubbed off at some point.
you didnât expect her to actually answer but she replies, âactually, iâd like you to meet my grandson as well. i think you two would get along. he's the same age as you too.â
the aforementioned grandson was someone youâve seen in a bunch of grandma leeâs hallway pictures. you remember that he was an only child, often the only kid and the lone subject in the photos. your favorite was the kid in red with a toothy grin. he mustâve been 5 when it was taken.
"it was a joke, grandma. i'm sure your grandson wouldn't want a stranger suddenly coming to meet him." she shakes her head,
"nonsense. that boy doesn't know what he wants." you laugh at her persistence. getting another bowl of rice, you ponder her offer for a second. maybe this could finally cure your dull and dry love life, it couldn't hurt to try. if worse comes to worst, you could just pretend it never happened.
âbut of course, iâll drive you there. i have nothing to do anyways.â you say with a mouthful of rice. grandma pats you on the back and continues to flick through the channels once more.
âthank you dear.â
-
the sunset blears through your windshield, sun rays momentarily blinding you. it was clear as day. the ride to her familyâs house was relatively quiet, the elderly lady in your passenger seat preferred to sleep the whole ride through after handing you the address, giving you a moment to leave you in your thoughts.
pulling up to the neighborhood, you let out a low whistle. the house was at the end of the street, steep and uphill. it was surely going to be a struggle to get the car way up there.
you get to the curb, reverse and try to park your car as best as you can. the house was really pretty, you thought. it looked pretty lived in too, but in a cozy way. vines was sprawled all over the brick exterior and flowers had bloomed all over the property.
you wake up grandma and start to haul her luggage up and out the car.
"you go up, grandma. i'll catch up."
after struggling to get the multiple bags of luggage up hill, you finally waddle to the front door. the door was left slightly ajar, probably for your convenience. you took a quick peek around, hoping for someone to let you in.
calling out before entering, you were met with silence. you figured they were too busy catching up so you eventually let yourself in.
the furniture adorning the hallway and rooms were made out of wood, the handiwork and craftsmanship was evident, intricate carvings on each and every one of them. it mustâve been made by grandma leeâs son as youâve heard from her many stories.
a ginger cat with white stripes greets you as you enter the front door, it strides over to you in intrigue. leaning down and dropping grandma's bags gently, you let the feline sniff your hand before allowing itself to be pet. soon enough it starts rubbing its body on your legs and purring loudly. adorable cat, you thought.
silence fills the house, aside from the soft chatter coming from the other side of the wall. the cat leaves it's spot, not wanting to be pet anymore. you sit up and observe the house again, noticing a myriad of family photos adorning the walls and some of the tables.
coming closer to one of the pictures, again, you encounter the same young boy in red but this time he was wearing a cap sideways and a puffer jacket that seemed to be way too big for him.
"hello! you must be y/n!" a feminine voice suddenly calls out from the living room. you straighten your back from the mention of your name, hoping she didn't catch you closely staring at their personal and probably private photos. grandma lee comes out from the living room as well and walks towards you with a younger and kind looking woman in tow. she had another cat in her arms, this time it's coat was gray with dark streaks.
you smile and greet her politely, exchanging pleasantries. you quietly pick up the neglected bags and place them near the guest room. they continue their conversation with each other from before, you now awkwardly standing in the middle. looking at your wrist watch, you figured you should probably head on home.
"i suppose i'll get going now, it was really nice meeting you." mrs. lee looked startled at your sudden announcement.
"why don't you stay for a while? it must've been a long drive here, you're probably hungry." these two women weren't related by blood but they practically were, having the same idea when it came to hospitality.
"well, i don't want to overstay my welcome. i'm just here to give grandma a ride." smoothening out your non-existent clothes wrinkles in apprehension.
she waves her hand in dismissal, "but you must stay, you're already here anyways." she grins and pats your back. mrs. lee didn't seem to budge at your refusal.
you relented, finally accepting her offer. "my son is in the kitchen whipping something up. he's a great cook." you totally forgot about her son being actually here. the joke offer from yesterday completely forgotten and flew out of your mind. slight embarrassment runs through you, realizing that the offer was somewhat serious. you would surely need to mentally prep yourself for more socialization than you've anticipated.
but you instantly believe her claim that her son was a great cook, the amazing and aromatic smell of what seems to be steak and multiple herbs and spices from the kitchen wafts through out the entire house.
"okay- while we're waiting," mrs. lee gestures for you to take a seat, "you should go sit on the couch, y/n. i've been dying to meet you."
she hands you a mug of hot tea and sits down next to you. "mom here talks about you all the time, thank you for keeping her company."
"it's no problem at all, i like her company too." and with that, the three of you fall into a smooth and comfortable rhythm of conversation. the younger of the two women across from you continues to poke and prod into life, not that you minded. she would ask you about your life, where were you from, where you went to school, and where you went to work and among other things.
she offers you stories of her son gleefully in return, laughing about a particularly embarrassing story when he was younger. you learned that he was quite fond and talented in dancing, loves cats, and loves to cook. oddly enough mrs. lee never mentioned his name at all, you didn't want to pry. now that you've thought about it, grandma hadn't mentioned his name at all either. all you had for a lead was initials you remember seeing etched on one of grandma's photos. you figured you'd meet this person soon enough anyways.
after a while, grandma lee retreats to the guest room they've set up, assuming that she'd want to fix her belongings. mrs. lee starts to drag you around the house, urging you to help her set the plates up and talk more while doing so. midway through placing the chopsticks on the table, the sound of pots and pans clanging from the other room shakes you out of your thoughts.
"mom?" a voice calls out from their kitchen. it must be her son. you slightly raise your eyebrows, he sounds oddly familiar but you can't place your finger who he might've sounded like. you quickly brush it off.
"yes?"
"have you seen the slow cooker?" the man finally reveals himself and pokes his head through the entryway to the kitchen.
you lift your head and lock eyes with the said person. shock freezes your movements, dropping the utensils that you were holding. blinking owlishly in surprise, you weren't sure if what you were seeing was real.
you feel the wind knock out of your lungs. this was not happening. the brown eyes, brown hair, and cat like face from work that you've come to dislike stared back. you must be hallucinating.
standing across from you was lee minho, the lee minho. grandma leeâs grandson. the same one that's been tormenting you all year round. you just couldn't believe it, wondering what kind of luck you had to end up here.
you think back to when you looking (--more like snooping) at grandma lee's framed hallway photos, the kid- that was him all along? you're really bad at recognizing faces, you thought to yourself. well, she certainly made him seem like a complete angel from the stories.
"oh! this is y/n. your grandmother invited her to eat dinner with us." mrs. lee pulls your figure closer into a side hug and beams at her son.
he furrows his eyebrows at you, glancing back and forth at you and his mother. he must be as confused and shocked as you are. "hi." minho says, nodding at your direction. you purse your lips and shuffle uncomfortably in place.
minho again asks where the slow cooker was since the first time he asked was ignored. he was wearing a loose fitting shirt, his broad shoulders looking more prominent. you realize you've never seen him outside of his work attire before. he looked comfortable, domestic even.
his mom says to check the cupboards, paying him no mind and continuing to set the table up. minho nods slowly, eyes not leaving yours and heads back to the kitchen. a little shell shocked about your little encounter, you clear your throat and go back to the task at hand. you'd just have to deal with this for the evening and then you could go home.
when the table was done, mrs. lee turns to you, "y/n? would you mind helping minho over there with bringing the side dishes to the table?" you freeze at the realization that you would have to interact with him alone.
"sure." you say meekly. she thanks you and goes to the guest room to presumably get the older lady for dinner. psyching your self up before entering the kitchen, his broad back facing you. he senses your presence and chuckles.
you were sure he was going to make this whole night unbearable.
"well, this is a nice surprise."
"what are you doing here?" stupid question from you seeing as this was his own house. mentally face palming your head, he hums smugly and starts dividing the side dishes onto smaller plates. you notice his very toned arms flexing as he puts the tubs away.
"i should be asking you that. i didn't expect you to be here." he says nonchalantly, but you could feel a sly smile forming on his face as he speaks.
"neither did i." you grumble and lightly shove him aside, wanting to get the side dishes out to the table already. you ignore the way he looks so domestic right now.
-
you stare at him from directly across the table, hoping he would keep his mouth shut. he smirks while he eats, purposefully riling you up and glancing at you with a knowing grin.
do not lose your cool, y/n.
silence rings out the dining room aside from the quiet clattering of utensils on plates.
"y/n?"
"i'm sorry?" you snap out of your little less than friendly staring contest with him.
"do... you know each other?" his mother finally breaks the silence and here eyes flickers back and forth between both of you.
"yes-"
"no-"
a full on headache is surely forming now, it's going to be hard to hide your annoyance. quick, think of a lie.
"we're coworkers. same company." you grimace as he answers for the both of you. no use in hiding it now. "oh! that's wonderful." the older lady to your right clasps her hands in delight.
"you didn't tell me you worked together." grandma turns to you grinning brightly. you avoid eye contact with her, nodding and forcing out a smile. you wanted nothing more than want the ground to swallow you up right then and there.
"you two must be close." his mother says, sipping at her drink. you were about to open your mouth to say that you really aren't actually, but minho beats you to the punch.
"we kind of are." minho rests his elbows on the table and turns to you. he's enjoying this. the bastard was enjoying this. resisting the urge to roll your eyes, you turn back to finish your meal.
hatred for the man aside, he really was a great cook as mentioned countless of times. you actually find yourself enjoying the meal he had prepared.
"tell me what you two get up to at work, i want to hear all of it."
you shift uncomfortably in your seat, being honest wouldn't be the best idea. you didn't want these two lovely women to know how much of an unpleasant man their son and grandson is. and it was his house after all, the best decision might be to at least be civil with him.
so you play along with his facade, not wanting to disappoint them even if it was probably going to bite you in the ass later.
minho starts cutting the meat up into bite sized pieces while the conversation between the two ladies continue. he places it on your plate without saying anything. this takes you by surprise, looking at his face for an answer.
the two audience members among the dining table seems to have noticed your little exchange. a wrinkly hand touches over yours catches your attention.
"oh, so are you two..." she trails off, implication heavy on her tone.
"no- no, grandma. i told you i wasn't seeing anyone." you shoot a discrete glare towards minho.
"ah, i see..."
you shrink down your seat for the remainder of the hour, embarrassment flooding your being. why did he have to do that? you were already practically fighting for your life not to get too involved with all this, and he pulls that?
after that very eventful dinner, it was already nearing 8 pm. you figured that you should probably get out of their hair, not wanting to disturb them than you already had. that bubble bath and movie marathon you had planned in your head sounded amazing right about now. maybe that would help you forget about this crazy night.
"grandma," she turns in response, "i think i better get going." you smile at her, digging through your pockets for the car keys. a different cat from the other two that you've met takes long strides, stopping by your feet. you greet it by petting it's head gently. you wondered how many cats they have.
"now? look at the weather dear," you look briefly at the window nearest you, surely enough it was heavily pouring. you deflate at the sight.
"i don't think it's a great idea to drive out in a storm." she looks at you in concern. crap. the conversation at dinner must've carried you away, not even noticing the angry rumble of thunder that came from the sky. she was right, you don't think you could drive out there immediately.
the last time you drove into hard pelting rain, you couldnât see through the windshield and almost crashed your car in the process. you could still remember how your car swerved and screeched when you couldn't control the way the tires' direction.
reluctantly dropping your hands to your side in defeat, "i guess i can wait it out for a bit." you finally say.
"yes, please do stay. we made extra dessert!" mrs. lee chuckles, seemingly enjoying your presence. glancing at minho, he was leaning on the side of the couch watching the exchange between you three, uncharacteristically silent and expression unreadable.
you reckon he wasn't all that thrilled about the whole thing either.
-
"the storm isn't letting up." minho sighs next to you, observing the dark and heavy rain pelting the window. it continues to pour down, filing in the silence.
"great." you mumble lowly, crossing your arms. a loud cackle of thunder makes you jump from your spot. he just laughs in response. you could feel your heart pounding out of your chest, anxiety quietly eating at you. damn weather man. you should've paid more attention to the forecast.
the smart watch on your wrist flashes with a notification. it was 11 pm now. "you should stay until tomorrow, dear."
you feel a comforting hand on your back, it was mrs. lee. it was only her staying with you two right now since grandma had already retired back to her room.
"tomorrow? oh, i- uh... i don't want to intrude." you stutter and look down, unsure how to accept her offer. but as much as you wanted to turn her down, you knew deep down you don't really have a choice in the matter.
another strike of thunder confirms your pitiful situation.
"i know what you're thinking, you can take minho's room." her words take you aback, that really wasn't what you were thinking. but she wasn't serious, was she?
at the mention of his name and apparent lending of his own bed, he whips his head towards his mother. he points to himself silently and gawks in disbelief.
you try to stifle a laugh at his ridiculous face. it wasn't often that you see minho all flustered.
realizing that mrs. lee might actually kick minho out of his room if you don't say anything, you decide to spare him. "that's okay, i'll take the couch."
"are you sure? the couch isn't the most comfortable..."
you reassure her that the couch is fine and not to worry. mrs. lee takes this as a confirmation that you'll stay for the night. she beams and grabs her son's shoulder,
"minho, do you have clothes that you can lend to y/n?" she catches you about to protest at the unnecessary offer, "don't worry about that, you're going to end up uncomfortable if you sleep in your clothes right now."
she leaves not long after with a quick good night to you both, also not leaving any room for any counter arguments. minho nods after registering what she said, hesitantly gesturing you to follow him towards the room at the end of the corridor.
he was quiet these past few hours, you observed. the annoying minho that you have gotten used to was no where to be found. putting yourself in his shoes, you understood. having a person that you dislike come into your home and spend the night would irk you as well.
the unexpected warm lighting and a subtle citrus scent with notes of jasmine and sandalwood welcomed you upon entering. it instantly brings comfort. not really expecting anything coming into his room, it was truly a pleasant surprise.
you stand awkwardly in the middle of his room, not wanting to touch or disrupt any of his space or belongings. he heads straight to his closet near his bed.
"it's alright, uh..."
minho ignores your attempt to refuse and starts digging deep for clothes that he could lend.
okay, nevermind.
you quietly glance at the homey decor that adorns the wall of his bedroom. multiple pictures of what you assume to be his friends were strewn all across the room. some of them seemed to be taken when he was in high school and some more recent. there were doing various funny and serious poses, minho seems to be really well liked.
"alright,"
he starts handing you a pair of black jogging pants and a plain white t-shirt. you reluctantly take the pile of clothes from him, your fingers momentarily brushing. you were certain you could hear your pulse thump in your ears. it confuses you greatly.
"this is the smallest one i have, sorry."
he coughs and rubs his neck, "the bathroom is over there, if you wanna change."
awkwardly shuffling on the way to the bathroom, a sigh of relief leaves your mouth as you lock the door behind. why were you so affected by a simple touch of his fingers? this was minho. you quickly shove the odd feeling down.
you hold the white shirt up to your torso, it was definitely too big. the hem of the shirt reaching your thighs and sleeves reaching your elbows as well.
peeling out of your clothes, and hold up minho's large shirt to finally wear. as you put it on, you could faintly smell the cleanness of detergent and a faint musky patchouli scent. your cheeks burn with the realization that you were really going to spend the night here.
when you return to the empty main corridor, the leather couch was already set up with a cozy looking blanket and multiple plush pillows. you struggle to hide a smile.
-
tossing and turning, you struggle to find a comfortable position on the couch. the blanket proving to be too hot right now, you push it off. you check your phone out of boredom and the led screen lights up.
1:19 am. it was in the middle of the night and the rain continues to pour outside. the occasional rumble of thunder once again evoking anxiety in you. sighing, you don't think you will be getting any sleep tonight. it's just you and your thoughts for now.
thinking back to this afternoon, the whole situation seems so absurd and surreal. who would've thought that you and minho would pretend being friends even if it was just for one night. it was a strange chance of circumstance.
the door from the end of hallway opens, a scruffy and disheveled minho rubs his eyes to get rid of his sleepiness. you sit up in curiosity to observe his sleepy state. he pads over the wooden floors to the kitchen looking for water, not sparing you a second glance.
when he was out of sight, you start thinking of ways to distract yourself, wanting to already succumb to slumber.
âoh, itâs you.â he says after coming back, finally noticing your slumped figure. "didn't sleep yet?" minho ruffles his hair haphazardly, trying to smoothen it down. you shake your head,
"insomnia. it's the thunder."
"ah."
"the couch is making your neck hurt isn't it?"
"yeah, that too."
he opens his mouth to hopefully offer another solution, but shuts it immediately. he wasn't sure if it would make you comfortable so he just stands there quietly.
"i'll go get you more pillows." he places his cup down on the coffee table before going to his room. minho stops in his tracks when he feels your fingers tug on his shirt. another strike of thunder flashes outside making you flinch.
"stay." you catch yourself saying before even realizing. it's selfish to ask but you don't think you could stand the thunder alone. watching him stare into your eyes, as if looking for an explanation- you offer him no words.
minho takes a seat at the end of the couch silently joining you, sipping at his mug. to fill the awkward silence, you clear your throat and fiddle with the ends of the cotton blanket.
you start thinking of ways to justify your selfish request of making him stay.
"i finished that damn paperwork you dumped on me. dick move by the way." you chortled to try to lighten the mood. he seems to notice your attempts to distract yourself and indulge your sudden desire to chat.
he folds his hands on his stomach, grinning. his bunny like teeth poking out. you always thought it was endearing. "it's fun seeing you all grumpy."
"sadist." you simper, the anger you felt from a yesterday dwindling at the surprisingly pleasant banter.
quietness takes over again. he stares into the celling, pondering. "i didn't know you were close with my grandmother." he says after a while. he avoids your gaze and places his mug back on the table.
"neither did i. it wasn't deliberate," you reply. he turns to you, curious about the story. so you explain to him how you met, for how long and that you didn't even recognize him despite seeing the photos.
he chuckles, "i bet it was this pose, wasn't it?" minho imitates the very same pose that he did in the photo, eliciting another laugh from you. it was exactly the same.
minho shuffles a little bit closer to you, now propping his arm on the back of the couch. you straighten up, now being hyperaware of his presence and proximity. he looks really different without his glasses.
a furry tail suddenly brushes against your exposed leg. you lean forward to check what had just rubbed past you, it was one of the cats. it meows for attention, pawing at the base of the couch.
"your cats are really cute." you watch him pick the orange haired feline and place it on his lap. one by one, two of the other cats that you've seen this afternoon start padding over to where you and minho were seated, jumping on the couch.
"that's dori," he points to the gray furred kitty. "doongie," an orange cat with a predominately white underbelly, "and soonie." the last one who's also orange but more so than the other. minho raises soonie's paw, waving it at you. cute.
"this one looks like you."
you scratch soonie's chin, the low purring getting louder the longer you do it. minho stares longingly at your eyes with an unreadable expression at the comment. you're not paying any attention to him.
after a while, the cats start to get tired of the two of you. they walk of to the end of the couch, now ignoring you and minho. you fold your arms and relaxing into the back of the couch, falling into a deep and comfortable silence that would be sorely missed.
"why do you hate me?" you say abruptly. the curiosity finally won, anxiety gnawing at your every fiber of your being. it was finally starting to be peaceful between you two and actually talking like normal people, your sudden comment might've affected it's chances of becoming true.
his head whips towards your direction in what you assume to be disbelief, furrowing his eyebrows. "since when did i hate you?"
you struggle to not scoff at his blatant charade, "minho, you have it out for me." this was strange and ridiculous. was he really being serious? how could he not be aware of the months of months of his incessant attitude towards you, and only you.
you remind yourself to be calm, to be civil. but he continues to feign ignorance. it was starting to get difficult.
"you don't treat me like the others, you constantly make my life harder by teasing me, and you dump your own paperwork on me. only me. the only time you talked to me normally was just a few minutes ago." your voice rising with exasperation.
"what did i do?" voice ultimately faltering, tired.
"i-..." minho refuses to meet your eyes, offering no solace.
instantly feeling vulnerable by your little outburst and by the lack of response on his end, you hug and bury the plush pillow for comfort. you wanted to go home. you wanted to go home and pretend this conversation did not happen. confrontation wasn't your strong suit.
after a long while of silence, he at last utters a low, "i'm so sorry."
"that was very, very stupid of me." minho's eyes are now trained on the hardwood floor, unable to even glance at you.
"what? the paperwork?" you scoff, "no, not just that. all of it."
you furrow your brows at him, "i just find you really really cute when you're mad." he continues. you stare at him, incredulousness and anger painting your features. before you could give him a piece of your mind, he speaks.
"and i realized i didn't know how to actually approach you normally without the teasing." he purses his lips, the cup on the table long forgotten. minho is staring up the celling now, still refusing to look to your direction.
"would you also believe me if i said i was jealous?"
you don't know what to say in return, heavily processing what he just said. what was happening? your mouth runs dry, confusion knocking the wind out of you.
"of your friend." he says, emphasizing the last part. you try to rack your brain of who he was referring to.
"jeongin?" you tilt your head. he says nothing, confirming the assumption. "i overheard him talking to his friends, bragging about how he was gonna take you out to this restaurant that he wants to drag you to." you couldn't possibly think of a reason why he would be jealous, you and jeongin are just friends. and why was he jealous in the first place?
"why are you so worked up about it? he's just a friend, minho."
"i'm not even sure myself," minho shakes his head in exasperation and turns to you. "but i like you, y/n."
standing there, paralyzed at his unexpected confession. minho likes you? he was giving you crap all year round, and yet he likes you? you shoot him a perplexed look, "wait, what?"
"let me get this straight," you hug your legs, trying to decipher what he was saying. "so your plan was to annoy the hell out of me, dump your paperwork seeing that you don't want me hanging out with jeongin because...you like me?"
"well, now it sounds stupid when you put it like that." he huffs, crossing his arms and pouting cutely.
deafening silence falls between you two, unable to say anything meaningful without stuttering and fumbling through your words. you just sat there, not really saying anything and staring at the floor. realizing that you probably don't feel the same, he sighs. its about time he went back to bed too.
"it's late. you should probably get some-"
before you knew it you felt your pulse roaring in your ears, grabbing his wrist and stopping him from standing up. you were going to regret it if you let him go.
"i like you too."
a magnetic pull causes you both to inch closer together, wordlessly gazing into each others eyes. you make the first move to lean into him, slowly placing an experimental peck on the side of his lips. you unsurely place your hands on his chest, "is this okay?"
his eyes flickering down to your lips and then back to your eyes. he licks his lips, still staring intensely- lovingly at you. he softly grins, tucking a lock of hair behind your ears and returns the kiss on your lips.
eyelids fluttering shut, you feel him press against you with much enthusiasm, deepening the kiss. you cup his cheeks as a reply, roughly pulling him towards you.
you already forgot about the rain outside.
he hoists you up his lap, a hand on your waist as he trails desperate kisses on your neck. minho pays his attention back to your lips, sloppy and open mouthed, saliva stringing from your mouths. urgency and eagerness was reflected in the way you both tangle your arms around each other, touching and caressing every part that you could reach.
all of the unresolved tension was slowly slipping away, replaced by desire.
a sudden meow breaks the two of you out of your trance. the green eyes of soonie stares up at the two of you, sitting quietly and their tail swishing side to side.
you loosen your arms around his neck, you two bursting out in laughter at the interruption.
"do you want to maybe take this to my room?" minho asks, placing a thumb on your lips. you didn't need to think twice.
-
your head hit his plush pillow, the cold and crisp linen feeling heavenly against your hot and flushed skin. shuffling up to the headboard, you watch minho with hazy eyes as he inches towards your form and props his knee on the edge of the bed.
he smirks as he sinks down on the mattress, hovering over your feverish body. minho sneaks a hand behind your back, grabbing you by the hips and flipping you over so effortlessly to the top as if you weighed nothing.
"now, where were we?" he murmurs into the column of your neck, his hot breath sending tingling and electrifying shivers down your spine. you respond by trailing your hands all over his clothed chest, wanting to get the offending article of clothing off.
he chuckles and grabs your wrists, halting you from doing so. minho kisses the inside of your wrist, a teasing smile dawns on his face. you look at him with desperate, pleading eyes, wanting to have him already.
minho adjusts his tight hold on you, biting his plush lips in anticipation. with you now towering over his figure, you lean down to capture the lips that you had been fantasizing about all evening and bury your hands into his hair. the kiss was wet and messy, your tongues sloppily and desperately swallowing each other's moans. a trail of saliva strings from both of your lips.
it was starting to get too hot for your liking. you cease your movements for a second to remove minhoâs borrowed shirt from your body. minhoâs eyes shamelessly rake over your chest, his finger leisurely trailing the middle of your breasts. you let out a low chuckle, finally unclasping the hook of your bra. you release a breathy shudder upon feeling something hard poking you from where you sat. grabbing both of his wrists, you eagerly put them up to your tits, you could feel your sensitive nipples harden because of his cold touch. minho starts pinching at the sensitive buds, prolonging his eye contact with you, clearly enjoying your erratic squirming.
you suck in a sharp breath and almost topple over him in pleasure as he takes a nipple into his mouth, hot, warm, and wet. it was overwhelming, having no one touch you like this before. he continues to lap at your hardening bud. minho groans, closing his eyes and further burying his head in your chest. your tits were covered in spit, glistening under the subtle light of his night lamp.
minho, while smothering himself in your chest, takes a moment to hook his arm over you. his skillful hands trail over to the waistband of your jogging pants and pulls it down. you oblige, leaning closer to him and lifting your hips so he wouldnât have to leave your tits. you jump in surprise once you feel a light teasing smack on your now semi exposed ass, only covered by thin panties. it elicits a small moan from you, pulling his head closer. you lightly pet his head and thread your hands in his hair affectionately as he continues his sucking, feeling a coiling sensation from your core.Â
but before you could cum, he detaches from your breasts, leaving his lips glistening with his own spit and his breath raggedy. a sly grin that you have come to love and hate graces his face upon seeing you whimper. the lack of stimulation makes you deflate, heaving frustratedly at his relentless teasing.
the familiar throbbing heat from your pussy suddenly gives you an idea. his hungry gaze watches you in curiosity. the bulge you were currently sitting on now immediately taking all of your attention. you do an experimental hump on it, hoping to relieve the aching heat from your cunt. minho's hands fly to your hips, groaning at the sensation.
"all this time, you made me think that you hated me-" you moan out, the fabric of his pants providing just the right amount of resistance. "when really you liked me?"
he stifles his moans by biting his bottom lip, his pants surely soaked through now.
"i did say i liked seeing you mad." minho manages to grunt out, licking his lips. you almost reel in disbelief but you keep your composure.Â
"you're confusing." another thrust.Â
"and i'm still mad at you." you huff out. hips now wildly humping against every ridge and curve of his cock. the sight of him makes you delirious, even more so that youâre humping against him.
"i-i'll make it up to you," he murmurs lowly, hissing the more times you buck up against him. "fu-fuck..."
despite the way that you were using him, it does nothing to quell the horniness you were feeling, in fact, it even spurs you on further. the wet patch from your panties soak and slowly transfer on to the front of his pants, your own wetness spreading messily every time you grind on his delicious dick, the ridges providing the needed friction that you've been so desperately craving. minho watches you, your tits bouncing up and down- he feels like drooling. "i love it when you use me." he finally breathes out, hands still on your hips, his nails making crescents on your skin. and finally, you cum, his words sending you over the edge.
it tremors through your body, white hot cum leaks out from your panties and you canât seem to hold yourself up any longer, collapsing on his broad chest. you clench your eyes shut in shyness, suddenly embarrassed from using minho so blatantly. he coos and pats your head in comfort, almost like how he pets his cats.
planning to make it up to him and eat his words, you sit up and shuffle down his hips. you admire the wet patch that stains his front, mouth watering. this surprises him, watching you with tantalizing eyes. you make a move to grab at his waistband, pulling it down slowly. he hisses out in pleasure as the waistband runs over his still clothed dick. minhoâs boxers were thoroughly wet, you could see a dark patch on the front where you sat on him and where precum leaked out. you lift up a hand to experimentally give his bulge a tight little squeeze, him letting out a little shudder response.
it hardens even more under your touch- so you decide to tease him to test the waters even further, running your fingers over and over his tent causing him to hiss out, sending you a warning look. taking this as a sign, you lift the waistband of his boxers and stare at his eyes while doing so. it springs up immediately after freeing it from its confines. his long and fat cock stands tall, the tip a deep red, and the veins prominently running along the sides. the sight makes your mouth water in anticipation. you place a thumb on his cockhead, running slow circles on his slit causing it to drool heavily on your hand.
his cat like mouth parts in ecstasy once you start teasing the underside of his length with your hand and licking the oozing liquid up. minhoâs hips start thrusting at the sensation, forcing you to hold him down. it was admittedly hard to do so, his thick thighs almost the size of your head but you still managed to restrain him from rutting wildly. the groan that leaves his lips sound is absolutely nothing short of sinful when you finally put your mouth on him. every desperate huff from him leaves you light headed, wishing you could record and replay it over and over again. when couldnât fit all of him, you resorted to pumping the remaining of the shaft were you couldnât reach. you egg him on even further by running a hand over his abs, seeing how his thighs and abdomen tense up.Â
you look up through your lashes to watch minho unravel. his eyes were screwed shut, focusing on the stimulation. while it bobs messily in your mouth, you try to pay special attention to his hot and heavy balls, rubbing it back and forth in the palm of your hand, hoping to get him to cum. minho closes his eyes shut again and tenses his thighs, finally cumming. his hands travel down to grasp at his length, taking it over yours, spurting his essence everywhere. minho finishes with a loud relieved groan, slapping his dick lazily against your cheek which you greedily lapped at.Â
âthat might be the best head iâve ever had, bunny.â he bites his lips, his voice light and airy. you quickly sit up from your position and gawked at him, suddenly feeling bashful at his apparent pet name for you.Â
minho gives you a mischievous cat like grin in return, feeling absolutely delighted at your expression. he begins to lightly graze your leg, leaving tentative touches and gentle pecks along the stretch of your lower limb. lifting your right leg up, you stop minho from inching any closer towards you by putting your foot on his chest.
"y/n..."
you pretend to think for a moment, stretching this out for as long as possible. he would just have to wait since he had yet to make up for being so mean to you. a little fun also wouldnât hurt, right? no, you were quite wrong.Â
minho again grabs your ankle albeit more roughly this time and continues to place chaste kisses with more passion this time, clearly adamant about giving your legs and thighs hickeys. at long last, minho slides the wet and abused fabric off you, the panty is thoroughly soaked and itâs material sticking and clinging to your core.
he hooks ur leg over his shoulder, urging to part your legs apart and spreading them obscenely open. staring intensely into your eyes, minho starts teasing your core with feather light touches. âyou like this?â he says his mischievous grin, continuing his ministrations. you offer him no response as he traces figures and shapes on your wet pussy that has you seeing stars. his fingers now erratically sliding up and down your folds. you almost sob at his nonchalant teasing, eyes clenching shut and begging him to put something in.
something about observing his veiny hand treading lightly just the outside of your lower lips leads you to tuck your face into your hands, the sight was like straight out of porn. âno, no. hands up bunny.â minho takes a hold of your wrists, putting them effortlessly above your head.Â
âyou have to look.â
his free hand drags along your legs to pull them apart and starts lowering his chiseled face down to your core. his nose just close enough to feel the small exhaling puffs of hot air on your pussy, causing it to twitch in suspense. the brunette sneaks a peak at your trembling figure before diving right in, the first contact of his tongue on your cunt was searing hot, instantly making jolt out in shock and cry out. minho takes this as a sign to hold down your hips, pressing, flattening, and letting his tongue rampant against you all while avoiding your clit. he hums at the taste, huffing and delving further into your pussy, eating you out with such intensity, placing open mouthed sloppy kisses. he spits to make your pussy wetter so he could languidly and erratically make out with your cunt.Â
you throw your head back into the heaps of pillows behind you as he starts to pay attention to your clit, softly biting the bundle of nerves. minho then moves to swipe his index up at the large amount of cum and spit trickling from your core, using it as lube for his fingers. he gently prods his index in your entrance all while still licking you up. his long fingers, deliciously stretching your hole, deeper than all those nights you've tried to do so yourself. the bliss you were feeling was overwhelming. minho croaks out a little âhah, hah, hahâŚâ every time he would come up for breath, completely drunk off your musky and intoxicating scent. you also donât miss how he subtly humps the bed sheets he was lying under either. you began to arch your back upon hearing his desperate sounds, your arousal spurting on his face.  Â
minho looks like a cat who got the cream, his pupils blown wide open and wetness trickling down the side of his mouth. he lets go of your hands after you were finished, the numb arm falling on your forehead as you catch your breath. he stands up to re-adjust your form on the bed, pulling you closer to his pelvis.
minho stares at your eyes, asking silently for permission. you look up at him with a toothy- fucked out grin.Â
the feelings that you couldn't place earlier was now clear, you wanted him.
minho reaches a hand over your face, caressing your flushed cheeks. he wordlessly leans to tenderly place a kiss onto your forehead and on your lips. you reciprocate lovingly, capturing his lips once again. minho without warning, pushes his long and girthy dick into you, the abrupt intrusion making you sob out. the bulbous head of his cock rubs deliciously against your gummy walls, you swore you could feel it in your throat.
âthere we go. there we goâŚâ
minho sets a rough pace, his hips thrusting against your pelvic bone. âah-ah!â
toned and skillful arms cage you in, forcing you to look deep into his dark pools. "you better keep quiet, or else the whole house will hear you." that for some reason makes your cunt even wetter, weeping more than you thought was possible. the sole idea of getting caught with their precious son doing such lewd acts, it seems sacrilegious and absolutely sinful.
he once again reaches for your hardened nipple, tweaking and pinching the bud between his thumb and index. the bed was now creaking with how fast minho was going, you silently prayed that no one in the house suspects anything. the thought mortifies you.
minho leans against your figure and nuzzles up on your chest, looking up at you with an oh so innocent grin while he continues to pound your cunt. his movements start to stutter once he feels your walls clench around him. your mind begins to feel like mush but you still try to make an effort to suppress your groans of pleasure. a strangled sound between a moan and a whine leaves your throat once he hits that one particular spot in you.
âkeep quiet, little kitty.â
you start squirming uncontrollably at the huskiness of his voice, not having experienced an intense orgasm like this before. âcum, you can do it.â your rutting hips stop to convulse for a moment, feeling your orgasm rip through the ends of your nerves. leaning back on his chest, you struggle to catch your breath, heaving from the aftermath of your orgasm.
fogginess still clouding your vision, you caught a small glimpse of minho to notice that he still hadnât pulled out, his hands circling your waist gently. you unintentionally clench on his cock, yep he was still hard, very hard. minho sets his eyes on you, and gives you that look. oh no, you knew that look. the same one that he uses around the office to persuade a higher up to heed to his request. you nibble on your lower lip in excitement.
âone more, you can do one more right?â he coos, lifting your legs and his hips starting his monstrous once pace again. you double over in overstimulation, crying out in pleasure. his breath hitches after a particularly hard thrust, choosing to muffle his own cries by shoving his face in the crook of your neck, inhaling your exhilarating scent. you respond by coyly playing with the hair on his nape, hoping that it would ground you to reality.
minho then sneaks a hand from below you and hugs your figure, pulling you impossibly closer. he swallows your moans, kissing you feverishly and running his hands wildly all throughout. it was so urgent, so intense, like heâs finding a way to meld your bodies together, his erratic and messy thrusts reflecting that.
your fingers clutch his thick bed sheets, euphoria piercing your body every time he drives another rough thrust into you. the lewd noises coming from the two of you echos and bounces off the walls, the conversation tomorrow morning was going to be so humiliating and awkward at the dining table.  Â
you canât hold it in any longer, and by the looks of it, neither can he. minho cums with a loud groan, spurting inside you. "goooood kitty." minho rasps out. you gape at the warmness, causing you to finish as well. minho reaches his hand downwards to spread your combined release, spreading it messily. it drips out of you obscenely as he pulls out.
you were positively flushed. he was too, sweat still glistening on the wide expanse of his chest and forehead. minho brushes your hair back affectionately before plopping down tiredly next to you. you turn to him, wanting to admire his fucked out features but he looks occupied and staring into space.
âwhat's the matter?âÂ
"i really am sorry about the misunderstanding. i feel terrible that i made you feel like that. and i do really like you. wasn't lying about that." minho sighs out, closing his eyes for a moment and then faces you. âi want to start over, properly this time.â
"apology accepted. and yeah of course." you say, quite happy with how this whole misunderstanding turned out. "i really like you too." he kisses the top of your head, making you wrap an arm around him to cuddle.
"now you'll just have to figure out how to reject the girl beside your desk. she wants to ask you out."
"maybe we can start by just making out in front of her."
Paring: Minho x Y/N
Genre: smut, angst, university au
Warnings: sex, 18+, Minho is a psycho, dom!Minho, sub!reader, abuse, BDSM, kidnapping, violence, age gap, Minho is an university professor, Y/N is a student, Y/N can be hurt physically (and mentally too I guess); TW! mention of murder and rape; fighting; Stockholm syndrome; Y/N getting drunk.; mention of sexual punishments and more... !This is adult content, If you don't like it or feel uneasy about the stuff I mentioned above, please do not read!
Synopsis: Who knew that accidental fuck in the club bathroom with a handsome man will bring you to a lot of unexpected events.
Author's note: I kept this series for a really long time not sure if I want to post it or not, but I decided to do it anyway, so I hope you'll like it. If you want to be added to the taglist just let me know :)
Chapters will be released on Tuesdays and Thursdays!
ââââââââââ
-> Part 1
-> Part 2
-> Part 3
-> Part 4
-> Part 5
-> Part 6
-> Part 7
-> Part 8
-> Part 9
-> Part 10
-> Part 11
-> Part 12
-> Part 13
-> Part 14
-> Part 15
-> Part 16
-> Part 17
-> Part 18
Masterlist
pairing: hyunjin x reader ; chan x reader | wc: 30k | genre: adult romance | warnings: heavy angst ; mutual pining/sexual tension ; dark ideation ; age gap ; hurt/comfort ; adult and sexual content. reader discretion is advised. this series contains heavy themes that could be upsetting to some. if you're concerned it might be an issue for you, please read the detailed list of warnings. this work is for adult audiences.
Hyunjin, unhurried, handsome, so tangible and so close, raised his hand then, bringing it near your face, gently pressing his index finger onto your cheek to collect a raindrop. His touch lit a wildfire inside of you that no deluge could put out. âItâs raining,â he said, his deep, expressive gaze fixated on the drop he had stolen from you, but not for long because he looked into your eyes then. âItâs okay,â he added with a smile, offering you his hand. âCome with me.â
Greed is, perhaps, among the most complicated concepts of the human psyche, mostly because it can take so many forms that one is often completely unaware it has woven itself into their heart. It camouflages itself as something elseâsometimes, even, as something noble, like concern.Â
One time, when you were nine years old, some girls in your class started some sort of unofficial hopscotch tournament. The prizes were nothing more than pretty rocks found on the beach or cheap chapsticks that were supposed to smell and taste like fruit but smelled and tasted like anything but fruit. There was also a fake, dollar store pearl necklace. A small dalmatian plush toy. An old Tamagotchi. Stuff like that. Everyone brought something from home.Â
Long story shortâyou were very good at hopscotch. You quickly climbed your way to one of the two finalist spots in the tournament, but unfortunately twisted your ankle at the end of recess. It was nothing. It didnât even hurt by the end of the day.Â
The next day, though, the girls prevented you from participating in the tournament because they didnât want you to get hurt. Insisting did nothing. Part of you knew these girls didnât want to get in trouble because exchanging items like that was not allowed at school, and if you got hurt for real, youâd need to see the nurse and it would risk exposing the whole thing.
Part of you knew you were better than them at hopscotch. You didnât even want any of their trinkets. Well, maybe except for the Tamagotchi. But still. You just wanted to play and make new friends. Back then, your father often told you that Christopher was a good boy but that you should hang out with girls more instead of spending your weekends looking for frogs under rocks with him.
You were too young to understand the entirety of the situation then. It was only later that you were able to see it as a whole. You were only nine years old but your father was witnessing you growing older and approaching that frightening moment in a young girlâs lifeâpuberty. And maybe he figured it wouldnât be long before Christopher would drag you into the forest for purposes other than frog hunting and he didnât like that.Â
The girls had been children, just like you were. Maybe Monica wanted Lexiâs plastic diamond ring. Maybe Stef wanted, badly, the little Sailor Moon figurine you brought to add to the prize list. If she had asked you would have given it to her.Â
But asking. Asking was one of the most difficult things anyone had to do in the course of their life. Because it exposed them. It bared them, displaying their want, their desire, displaying what they lacked. What was missing from them. It showed the world how greedy they were, and there was real shame in thatâunwarranted, but it was still there, and very real. So of course Stef wasnât going to just ask for it. In this world, we all strive to look like we donât care. About anything. Ever. Itâs easier to live this way, to hide ourselves under several layers of nonchalanceâbecause it makes sure we donât have to make ourselves vulnerable to others.
Greed took so many forms. Envy and jealousy were symptoms of greed, manifestations of it. So was longing, or selfishness. You had reached a point in your life where you wondered if all those words, all those emotions, perhaps, were just synonyms. Maybe they all meant the same thing.Â
You were not above it. You had been greedy, too. You couldnât tell for sure but maybe you had always known you would never be good enough for Chris, yet you had let him love you nonetheless. You let him kiss you, then you let him confess his love and let it grow into something so big, so rooted into him that some parts of himself became parts of you and vice versa. Then you let him marry you. And then you let him put a baby inside you.Â
You had been greedy when, all those years before, you had let Liam fuck you just because you wanted to feel something. Anything. Just because you thought it would be your only opportunity in life to feel desired and wanted, as shallow as it might have been. You had been greedy when you found out you were pregnant and that your first thought had been that you, for sure, could not keep this baby because it was going to wreck your entire life.Â
Judith was your punishment for it all. Not her, but her loss, which was just as heavy and tangible. The jealousy you had felt when Chris would hang out with girls. How selfish it had been to let Liam touch you and then fuck you even though you did not want him. Because maybe you did it to see if it would get a reaction out of Chris.Â
It felt as though you could not be that anymoreâgreedy. Because it required some stamina. It demanded some life, some⌠something. Anything. And you had been stripped of all of it. You remembered the last greed that haunted you for a long time, and perhaps the ghost of it still did.Â
You wouldnât have been able to tell this to anybody, but you had been greedy to let Chris stay. To hope that he would love you again. And you were ashamed. It had been greedy at first and now it was just⌠cowardly. Which might just have been another version of greed anyway.Â
It took too many forms to compile them all, which, you felt, made it the most insidious feeling of them all.
Insidious because you had genuinely believed all this time that you had gotten rid of it. That your heart was dead and would remain dead and that it meant you would never taste the sweetly bitter taste of greed on your tongue. It was true, it was an honest thought, but you had never believed it made you a better person than anybody else. It just made you an empty person.
And then one day, everything changed.
The morning after your conversation with Hyunjin, you went to sit outside to watch the sunrise. You refilled your water bottle and closed the shop, walking the short climb uphill for a better, unobstructed view. Most days, you did not mind the trees. If anything you found it quite beautiful. The way light filtered through them, reflected in hundreds of echoes of luminescence, scattered on the grounds or structures, caressing them, changing them.Â
But that morning you were craving for something different. Something had changed within you and you werenât sure what it was, you just knew it required action to make it real, to make it official.Â
Maybe you had known all along. That aloneness might have been forced upon youâthat you had been made alone and lonely and miserable, but that you would need to do something about it to test the bars of this prison, to challenge them. Not escape them, per se, because you did not believe you would ever not be alone. But, it turned out, no matter how unattainable you were, no matter how broken, somebody had visited that prison. And you were still alone, sure. But a different kind of it.Â
So you walked. The sky was a dull gray when you set out, making your way on the dirt road leading to the gate and the main road. There was nothing else in the areaânothing that could be seen anyway. Just a forest and a road and the sound of the river flowing downhill. On some days, the iodine breeze, coming from the shore, made it all the way here, blending with the other scents. The evergreens, the decaying pine needles on the ground, the damp riverbank. Together, they became something else. Still very much distinctânobody could mistake the smell of the ocean for the smell of treesâyet changed by one another.Â
It gave you something to think about.
That day was one of those days. Saltiness permeated in the air along with the rest of it. The morning dew on the grass, rendering it cold and slippery. The trees releasing their pollen. Flowers growing in patches at random places. You walked unhurriedly, knowing you had plenty of time, listening to the forest waking up around you. Finches and chickadees flew over you, crossing the narrow dirt road to get from one tree to another, searching for food or a mate or perhaps both. As you progressed, the trees became more sparse, allowing you to see the river.
It was wide here, and the water was always calm in that spot, making it look like a lake. You had seen it all your life and yet it fascinated you still to this day. Once, when you were little, you had gathered all your courage to ask your parents why they called it a river when it didnât look like one. Your mother explained that it was a river and just that. That day, your mother found an old school book of hers. You wouldnât have been more than five or six years old, small enough that every aspect of the world seemed grand to you. It was your mother who taught you that lakes became riversâthat they were the same body of water. She used the poetic approach with you, adding that rivers, even the smallest ones, would ultimately spill into the sea and that it meant everything was somehow connected. She said the place where the river curved and became wide and calm was not really a lake, just a river taking a break before continuing its journey to the estuary and the ocean.Â
You thought of your mother that morning when you slowed down to take in the sight of the river taking a break, becoming something else while remaining exactly what it wasâa river. Just that.Â
You heard the common loons before you saw them. Stretching your neck as you walked uphill, trying to see anything as the dawn was still shy and the world still quite dark. Dark but not opaque like nightâdim but see-through. Gossamer. Your mother had taught you that word when she showed you her motherâs wedding veil, made of delicate tulle and lace. Your mother had taught you many things but she wasnât done schooling you when she died.Â
You wish she were still alive because things were weighing on your heart that only a mother would be able to untangle. She would have been the only person to truly understand how it felt when Judith died. And all that it entailed.Â
The common loonâs haunting call filled the air, loud and quiet at once, occupying as much space outside as it did inside you. You kept walking, knowing their voices would follow you. When you reached the top of the hill, you went to sit past the trees, on one of the big flat rocks that had been put on the edge of the river to stop people from descending into it. It was enticing after all, this place where the river rested before it became something stronger, but it was treacherous as the undercurrents were quite strong here.Â
But the ducks did not mind the undercurrents this morning. You watched them as the sun slowly rose on the horizon, breaking through the forest on the other side of the river. It was a pair. Two adults and their two chicks. It had been your father who told you that common loons mated for life, which meant the same pair would reunite in their chosen place to nest, mate, and raise their young. And when the time to migrate would come, they would go their separate ways more often than not but still reunite come spring.
Since that day, you had nothing but admiration for them. How much faith did one need to have to leave the partner you had known all your life and the place where you had raised maybe dozens of chicks, only to hope that you would see them again when winter ended?Â
But what happens if one gets lost? you had asked your father. And he told you that common loons would only pair with another if their mate passed away. Last year, your father attended a high school reunion. Long story short, he reconnected with an old friendâMarcy. Marcy and he had briefly dated when they were teens, and it looked like she would have been down to relive the experience. You understood that he did not want to betray your mother, but sometimes, you feared for him, because he could not move on.Â
You reminded him of the common loons one day, thinking it was a solid argument as to why he should call Marcy back. And then you were faced with a truth so ugly and so terrible that you had buried it somewhere deep within youâyou had discovered the difference between could not move on and would not move on. Your father would not move on. By choice. Maybe, like you, he refused to let greed permeate him, and chose misery instead.Â
The ducks swam gently on the water, the parents feeding their chicks with whatever they found under the surface. You wondered if they were the same two common loons that you had seen for the past several years. Or if one had been lost and the other had moved on. If it were the case, you wondered if they remembered their old mate. If they missed them.Â
You wished your mother were here. Right now. Sitting next to you, watching the ducks and the sun as it rose in the sky.Â
You would tell her about Hyunjin.Â
You would tell her about his paintings. About the kindness with which he treated youâyou, a complete stranger. You would tell her he didnât feel like a stranger the way other people did. Others were strangers in the sense that there was distance between you and them, and perhaps even a wall of sorts. Hyunjin was a stranger but it was not a wall that separated the two of youâit was a door. And he had opened it last night, politely but decidedly.Â
You would tell your mother you had never spoken with someone as direct and as honest as him, and that it made you want to be more like him. Because you liked being treated like that. You would tell her he did not hesitate to make space for you, to share weed and liquor with you. You would tell her about the charcoal sketches he showed you.
There was no one else in the world you could possibly tell these things. That you had forgotten what happiness felt like the way expats forget their home countryâthey remember it like one remembers a movie instead of their past.Â
You would tell your mother that Hyunjin was the closest thing to a genuine memory of happiness that you had felt since that awful day when they put your daughterâs dead body in your arms.Â
You would tell your mother that you did not want to let him be more than that. That it had already been too much. That each smile was a betrayal to Judith.Â
Every flutter of your heart was a betrayal to Chris.Â
It could not be stoppedâsomething about last nightâs encounter had reignited your heart. And you felt it this morning. It seemed like a frequency emanated from it, steady, echoing the sun rays or perhaps bird song.Â
Greed.
Complicated. Intricate. Unavoidable.Â
You wanted it all. You wanted to respect your daughterâs memory. Also, you wanted to respect your marriage to Christopher because you had loved him all your life. Also, you wanted to feel something other than the crushing weight on your heartâin other words, you wanted to let Hyunjin soothe some of that pain, let him hold some of that burden for you.Â
But you couldnât have it all, could you?Â
You stared at the horizon before you, making sure to notice the beauty in it. But all that you could see was the way Hyunjin looked a lot like the place where a river could come to rest before it started again, only to become something stronger. Grander.Â
You had never been one to believe in fate beforeâthere had been no need for it in your life. Not really.Â
It had been so long since anything made sense. Harmony had ceased to exist the moment Judithâs heart failed.Â
But before her, there had been a painting for which you developed a liking, a fascination. The fascination extended to its creator. The painting depicted lossâthe same loss that would be forced upon you years after you discovered it. Maybe you loved it even more after. You certainly understood it better. Unfortunately.Â
It had not been a comfort, not reallyâLoss, the painting, was more like an anchor to you. Something that you could look at and remember that you were not dreaming. That even though it felt like it, you were not trapped in a nightmare. You needed to be reminded of that sometimes, or else you started to hope you would wake up soon.Â
Out of all the camping grounds in the world, it was at yours that Naroâs direct descendant ended up. And the colors of Hyunjinâs soul were familiar to youâso was the damage in it.Â
And so, it made sense. Somehow. That it was all related. For so long, the pieces of the puzzle had been floating in chaos. And now, one by one, they were finding their place within one another, showing you little by little the illustration their whole would become.Â
And you did not know what it would become.Â
But today, for the first time in a long while, you wondered what it would all amount to. With genuine curiosity. Today, you wanted to see what the pieces of the puzzle might revealâif they revealed anything in the first place. Chances were that the image would be abstract or blurred or maybe something terrible.Â
However, you still wanted to know. And if that wasnât the manifestation of whatever changes had occurred within you, then what was it?
You left the shop in Allieâs hands after staying with her a little longer than you needed to, but the cause was nobleâyou helped her set everything up for the opening, and then you stayed even as the first clients came by. It was almost always the same kind of clients who were here this early into the day. You had the smokers who wanted to make sure they wouldnât run out of cigarettes with their coffee. You had those who would go fishing and needed bait. You had parents who absolutely needed milk or juice for the kids. Then you had what you called the true vacationersâthey were up at sunrise just because. For no other reason than they might as well stay up if they got awoken by a bird nearby or something. They had no worries at all, and often felt like taking a little walk aroundâthey stopped at the shop to get a coffee or a bottle of water, or just to have a conversation with another human being.Â
Allie was just the right person to work the mornings. A widow in her 50s, she applied for the job last year, admitting that she craved human connection and wanted an opportunity to find it in a place like Riverside Campground. Neither you nor Chris had any hesitation in hiring her.Â
âI think youâre all good here,â you told Allie after doing a last checkup of the self-serve coffee machines.Â
âYou go sleep now, stop making excuses not to,â Allie retorted with a playful smile. The smile faded a little and her eyes took an inquisitive look. âAre you alright?âÂ
The tone with which she asked the question shook you, as though you knew it meant much more than just how are you.
âYes Iâm alright, what is it?â you responded with that rehearsed voice and that rehearsed smile that you hated so much.
From behind the cash register, Allie tilted her head slightly, observing you. A group of four, all of them in fishing gear, was approaching. You could hear their voices through the windows. They sounded excited.Â
âNothing,â Allie replied. Then she immediately added, âI donât know, you seem a little different.â
Part of you wanted to run away from this placeâand this conversationâas quickly as possible. You were not the kind of person who talked about these things, certainly not with your employees. Not because you didnât like them but precisely because you did. You wanted to pretend that you were whole. You didnât want them to know they worked for a wreck of a human being. Out of concern for them. Out of shame and guilt. Out of greed, perhaps.Â
The few seconds it took for you to come up with an appropriate and believable response were more than enough for Allie to understand that whatever you were about to say would not be the truth.
âIâm not used to working overnight,â you said anyway. A lame attempt, but an attempt nonetheless.Â
âThatâs not really what I meant,â she told you. âI meant different in a less melancholic way.â
You stood near the coffee machines, your eyes fixated on the woman behind the counter, frozen in shock. Panic took over youâyou had never told Allie about Judith, not directly. But the older employees, or your father, or Christopherâs parents, would sometimes talk about it, and word usually got around. The team was very sensible about this and never really brought it up. Allie had talked to you about it last year. Because she was a mom, too, and only a mother would understand this loss. She said you reminded her a little bit of her daughter. She hugged you that day, but never talked about it again.
Case in pointâAllie knew about it all. She knew about the gaping wound in your chest.Â
Today, right now, Allie had become the first witness of your betrayal to your daughter. And you did not know what to do about it.Â
âItâs a good thing,â Allie added, her smile returning to her lips. She shook her head and pushed a strand of graying hair behind her ear. âRemember what I told you last fall?âÂ
Yes, you remembered. It was something that had been told to you before, in passing, in less direct words. It happened last year on the last day of the seasonâmuch like opening day, the camping ground organized a big party to end the season. Bonfires, music, barbecue, drinks of all kinds. Allie wasnât even scheduled that day but she came anyway and sat with you by a bonfire while you were making for her your famous âfire appleâ, which was an apple coated in butter and brown sugar, slow-roasted over flames. Few words had been said, except Allie had told you, âYouâre allowed to be happy, you know?â And when that hadnât gotten her a response, she added, âOr at least, youâre allowed to be something other than sad.âÂ
You did not think it was true. The others didnât know. They didnât know about what had happened when you were seventeen. The baby that you had been too scared to keep. So it made sense that they couldnât comprehend the entire situationâthey simply did not know that you had failed so many times. That life was punishing you for what you had done. For the thoughts you had. The doubts you hadâhow you had not been sure that you wanted to have a baby with Chris.
That you had wanted to want it.Â
There were no doubts, however, about the very real love you had for your unborn daughter. From the moment you knew she existed within you. That love became unconditional. That love became an integral part of you. But maybe none of it mattered, not if you had been secretly wishing that it would take a long time for you to become pregnant.
Was there a word for wishful thinking, but in a negative context?Â
Just a manifestation of your deepest, darkest thoughts, perhaps?Â
Whatever it had been. It was all your fault.Â
âI remember,â you told Allie with a nod. âIâll try to keep that in mind.â You didnât really mean that and you could only hope she hadnât noticed. âHave a nice day, Allie.âÂ
And she wished you a good day in return, urging you, again, to go home and sleep.Â
You grabbed your things and made your way toward the employee parking lot where you immediately saw that Chrisâ truck was there already. You sat behind the wheel of your car, pondering over Minhoâs breakfast offer. He sounded like he meant it when he invited you, and the truth was you kind of wanted to go. But another, worse truth was also lingering in your chestâyou needed time to process all those thoughts crowding your mind.Â
You needed time to get used to the bitter, unpleasant taste of shame on your tongue, and no amount of bacon or orange juice would help with that. How much time? It was hard to tell, and maybe youâd never actually get used to it. Maybe youâd just be forced to live with it. The same way the rest had been thrown at you against your will.Â
The same way aloneness was forced upon you.
You dreamt.
The dream was fuzzy, neither good nor bad. A nightmare but not really. It was hard to call a dream a nightmare when it was just a copy of your life. It would be like admitting to something terrible, something that should remain secret, unspoken.Â
But you dreamt of a city you didnât know, a metropolis, walking in its crowded streets, everything around you a blur. In this dream, you were making your way to the cemetery where Judith had been buried, only, you were lost. And you couldnât at all figure out where to go. You asked faceless passersby for directions but they did not see you, or pretended not to. Only, you were not scared. You were unhappy and upset but this was no different than your usual.Â
I want to see my baby, you kept telling these strangers. Tell me where to go, please.
But they said nothing at all, and somewhere in your heart, you knew it was because there was nothing to see in the place where your daughterâs name was engraved onto a pretty crescent moon-shaped tombstone. No amount of tears that you would cry into the soil that covered Judith would ever bring her back, nor would it change anything.Â
In this dream, you kept walking in the city you did not know, stopping in front of a building, a shop of sorts, with a large window at the front. There was something displayed in the windowâa painting, almost as large as the glass that separated you from the canvas. This painting did not exist in reality yet you recognized it as a self-portrait. It showed a young man sitting in front of an easel, painting a lake. His face was mostly hidden behind his dark brown hair. Black but not quite. You stared at the painting for a long time. It seemed like the lake inside of it was almost too lifelike, as though the man was bringing it into existence just so he could drown in it.
And then you woke up.
The house was quiet. Quiet in a way a house was quiet nowadaysâso not really. The steady humming of appliances in the kitchen did very little to cover the noises coming from outside. Cars. Their engines, the tires on the pavement. It was a small street and there werenât too many cars passing by, but when there were, you heard them.Â
Your neighbors too. You heard them. On the left of your house was an empty lot but on the right was a couple in their 70s. Lovely people. They had a few children who were no longer children because they had children themselves. Many parties and barbecues occurred over the summers with everyone in this beautiful family reunited. They werenât too loud and itâs not like the parties went on until impossible hours. Truth be told, you were so busy during the summer that it didnât bother you.Â
Itâs just that you heard them. Cassie and John, and the cars, and the children on their bicycles. And while you were aware that hearing anything at all was a privilege and should not be taken for granted, you couldnât help but wish that you didnât, sometimes.Â
Thisâall of thisâjust reminded you that life went on for everyone else except you. You were stuck somewhere in the past or perhaps in many places. In a mall in the next city over. In a hospital room. And yet nowhere at all. Maybe somewhere under the river, buried, forgotten.Â
You rolled into your bed, lying on your side, facing the space where Christopher should be. Would have been if you were anything other than⌠this. You touched it. The mattress, the sheets. You pressed your face onto his pillow, inhaling his scent. It was just strong enough that you knew for sure he had slept here last night, sometime before you came home. At least he had been alone, because your pillow smelled like you and not like Summer.Â
It was with your head on your husbandâs pillow that you remembered your dream. You rarely dreamt and when you did, the memory of it didnât usually follow you into the real world. But it did today, images from it lingering behind your eyelids, playing like scenes out of a silent movie. A city. You, just walking. A man and a lake. A shop.
You opened your eyes again, realizing that you were having an idea. A dangerous one. Frankly, a stupid idea. And you really shouldnât listen to it. You should forget that dream and the reasons it haunted your mind, but instead you pushed yourself up and made your way to the bathroom for a shower, telling yourself that whatever was occurring in your head was more like being colonized by thoughts rather than having them sprout within your mind. You took your time, more than you ought to. You shampooed your hair twice. You conditioned it mindfully. You washed your body carefully, the way you would if you loved it. Pretending that you loved it and that it was not a graveyard. You rinsed everything off. You applied lotion.Â
It didnât take a lot of time before the smell of coffee invaded the first floorâyou let the coffee machine brew your cup while you returned upstairs to put some clothes on, scrolling your phone to find an address. You had been to that shop before but it was a few towns over and you just wanted to make sure.Â
It was greedy. What you were about to do. It looked like a generous thingâto an outsider and perhaps even to yourself if you were less self-aware, it would appear as an act of kindness. And it was. But it was so many other things tooâthings too frightening to even think about.Â
So instead of thinking about them, you put on some comfortable clothes, poured your coffee in your favorite travel mugâit had a funny frog on itâand left your home only to get in your car and drive away. The whole time, you wondered what it meant. That you were going where you were going and doing what you were about to do. You wondered if it was as significant as it seemed to be to you.Â
You wondered why your heart was fighting so damn hard to stay aliveâto keep beating, to keep feeling, when you had wished for the exact opposite for so long. All this time you thought you had some semblance of control over it all. You thought you had some anchor somewhere, something keeping you where you needed to be, which was to say, as far away from happiness as you could be.Â
But that day, you drove the hour it took to get to a small art supplies store, run by a lady who liked to visit the camping every other year or so. It was so tiny it was difficult to imagine the shop could hold much and yet you knew that any artist could find what they wanted here, and more. It was a sunny day but the shop was cool because the lady installed air conditioning two years back.Â
She recognized you from behind the counter, calling you by your first name, which she remembered, and offering you a kind smile. The wall behind her was covered in shelves that were covered in so many things. Canvases. Paintbrushes. Archival grade glue. Wax, pencils, ink.Â
You had no control over the smile you offered her in return.Â
âWhat can I do for you today, young lady?â She always called you that but you did not feel young anymore. âAre you planning another art workshop for the camping ground?âÂ
You always planned an art workshop at the camping ground, most often for kids, but sometimes one for teens and adults, too. But there was rarely much of a crowd on those, as though grown-ups were too intimidated, whereas children felt no pressure to perform. They came, they spread colors on a canvas and they were content with just that. It was more complicated for adults. They thought they had to be good. They thought they had to know how to paint. But nobody in the world needed to be good at what they did for the first time. Or for the hundredth time. The truth that adults seem to forget, intentionally or not, is that you can keep trying and doing things even if you suck at them.Â
âYes, but thatâs not why Iâm here today,â you replied, scanning the wall behind her and then the other shelves around you, searching for what you were looking for. âI would like to buy your best, fanciest watercolor paints, please. And aquarelle paper and brushes obviously. The whole kit someone of high skill would need to paint.âÂ
Those words released a tangible taste on your tongue. Something sweet. It reminded you of honey with the way it coated the inside of your mouth and went down your throat as you attempted to swallow it down. It didnât get stuck in your throat. It just existed within you.Â
You had never really been good at any of it. Making friends, talking to people. Being happy.Â
Healing.Â
But it didnât mean you should stop trying even though you sucked at it, right?
It was mid-afternoon by the time you made it back home. You would have been expected over at Riverside some time ago but you also knew that nobody would actually care enough to text you, not unless the campground was short-staffed. Or on fire. And you had been extra careful, checking the schedules twice, making sure that nobody had called off.Â
You werenât Chris, so it meant they wouldnât notice you werenât there unless somebody needed something specific from you. Or if they couldnât find Chris, for one reason or another.Â
There was something comforting in that. Invisibility. It felt like your own little superpowerâto have the ability to disappear from peopleâs minds. You left no trace where you went. You were polite and kind and understanding, and yet so forgettable. You were not fun or special the way Christopher was. Christopher stayed in peopleâs minds long after he had parted from them.
You, on the other hand, did not.Â
Which is why you drove back home instead of going straight to Riverside Campground as you initially planned. The thought had occurred to you about halfway through the rideâthat Hyunjin had probably forgotten you.Â
Nothing about you was substantial enough to leave any mark on people. While it could be comforting, it was not an easy thing to accept and it would have been a lie to say you were one hundred percent okay with it, but you were also aware of the situation and knew better than to keep any sort of hope. Like the hope that you existed somewhere in Hyunjinâs mind even today, several hours after your private moment with him.
What a humbling experience it was. Because you couldnât get him out of your mind. You thought of his paintings and the way he used color or the way light hit some of his pieces, giving life to them through his agile impasto technique, adding depth with the shadows it left behind. And that made you wonder if there could be beauty buried somewhere within you, should you be seen under the right kind of light. That led you to wonder what kind of light would ever be the right one for such a miracle to happen.Â
So you went home, unnoticed, leaving the brown paper bag containing the art supplies on the kitchen table and immediately making your way upstairs. You had showered earlier but you needed to be under the water again, perhaps to wash away some of the things lingering within your skull. You shouldnât even be thinking of him at all. Hyunjin. It was cool that he was related to Naro but it was another thing to remember fondly the way his lips moved when he spoke. The exact shape of them as he said certain words, like alone, or love. Or when he said your name.
You shouldnât be remembering the words he said to you because he must have said them to be kind after you forced your secret upon him. When he said that your soul had many colors in it, or that he hoped he would see you again for drinks.
You shouldnât be remembering the way it felt when he hugged you, holding you in his arms for a brief instant. He was strong but he held you delicately, almost like he was afraid to break you. Couldnât he see that you were beyond that already? Crushed? Destroyed?
Distracted would have been another good word to describe you as you returned to your bedroom, wrapped in a towel, to find some clothes. You asked the smart speaker for information on the weather to help you figure out your outfit and settled for a sundress, as the day would get warmer around the sunset, and cooler overnight.Â
You got dressed. The whole time, you wondered if perhaps you ought to use wrapping paper for the art supplies, or maybe just slap a colorful bow on the bag. But then it would seem like a gift and not just an apology for not keeping the right kind of paint at the general store. However, it really was a gift, because no fucking camping ground sold high-end art supplies at their shop. They were lucky if they had a shop at all. Nobody in their right mind should have expected to find such art supplies in the same shop where they bought live worms for fishing trips. Or tarps. Or toys to play in the sand.
It was just a way for you to say thank you. Something had changed within you thanks to him, and because he had forgotten you didnât mean you shouldnât be grateful. He had shown you an exclusive sketch by Naro himself, and that alone meant more than he could even realize.Â
You were thinking of Hyunjinâs hands as you went down the staircase, remembering it from videos seen online where he was painting, and it was all that you could seeâhis hand, the paintbrush he held, and the canvas on which he applied colors. He held the brush in a very particular way. His fingers were long and graceful, and his brushstrokes were just as elegant, perfectly balanced. Strong when they needed to be and delicate when it was required. The videos he posted were pretty short but you could watch him for hours, truly. There was something fascinating about the way he painted. As though he painted like one danced, or played the violin. Like it was his soul the paintbrush was spreading onto the canvas, not paint.
But you shouldnât be thinking about any of that. At least not in the way you were.Â
Which is why you almost collapsed from shock when you heard a voice coming from the kitchen.
âWhatâs that?âÂ
Chris.Â
Your first reflex was to look through the front window to verify that you werenât hallucinating. You gulped when you saw that his pick-up truck was indeed parked right next to yours. He must have come in when you were in the shower.
After taking a deep breath, you made your way to the kitchen only to find Chris holding the paper bag and inspecting its contents. Your heart dropped before it entered a frenzied raceâyour pulse quickened so much you could feel it through your ribcage. In fact, you feared he would hear it from where he stood.
You figured it wouldnât feel much different if he had caught you straight-up cheating. With a cock in your mouth and all.
It was difficult to read Chris, today especially. You had no idea why he was here as it was past his lunch break and he usually avoided you unless he really couldnât. His shoulders and neck were stiff as though he was nervous and it made you wonder if something had gone wrong back at the campground.Â
Then Chris proceeded to grab one of the items from the bag to look at it under the light spilling from the nearest window. A slight frown appeared on his already tense face. âYou picked up painting?â He looked at you in a way that hinted he was trying to be nice about it, but after knowing each other for so longâand after many lost games of Pictionaryâhe knew you did not have the capacity to sketch even the simplest of objects.Â
You ran your tongue on your lips. Your mouth was very dry all of a sudden, enough that it felt a little like your trachea was closing in on itself. You cleared your throat to rid yourself of the lump getting stuck in it, which was shame-shaped.Â
The mere fact that you wanted to lie to Chris about this excessively minor event said a lot about the entire situation. In this instant, a vast sadness overcame you. As though you were realizing something that had been under your nose all this time. Only, your brain wasnât letting you access the entirety of the revelation.Â
All that you knew was that despite how seemingly inconsequential this wasâmeeting Hyunjinâit had shifted things within you, things you previously thought were cemented to your bones.
You inhaled deeply, bracing yourself so you could be brave and not lie to your husband. Because there was nothing to lie about. âItâs for Hyunjin. He traveled with art supplies and the airport lost his bag.â
A cloud passed in Christopherâs eyes but it was only temporary. You saw it but you pretended you didnâtâfor your own sake. For his, too. It was barely anything anyway. The kind of cloud that covers the sky momentarily one afternoon and you wonder if itâs going to ruin your day or not, and in the end the blue returns and it doesnât rain. And you realize there was never even a risk of precipitation.
Maybe, deep down, you were hoping Chris would be angry. Upset. Jealous. Because at least that would mean he still cared. That would mean there was still something to be upset about. After all, you were upset when you saw Summer wearing his hoodie. But he stood there in the kitchen with sunlight caressing his handsome face, on which an expression that was neither anger nor jealousy or even disappointment had appeared.Â
âHe paints?â Chris said, his voice steady and low, but clear as day.Â
âHeâs the guy who asked for watercolors yesterday, remember? Jeongin wanted to know if we sold any,â you reminded him, causing Chris to nod before he returned the tube of Phthalo Green to the paper bag.
âI remember.â He stretched his neckâChris seemed less nervous, or maybe more of something else. It was difficult to tell. âThatâs really nice of you.â
The worst part of knowing Chris had fallen out of love for you was that he was still your best friend. He was still the guy you grew up with, the one who would take you frog hunting, the person with whom you shared the most memories. But it was as though that best friend was buried underneath layers of dead soil and you no longer had access to him. Or maybe you did, only you didnât know which tool to use for the excavation. Today, Christopher looked more than ever like an archeological miracle. Something perfectly preserved, but no longer active. Just remains. The skeleton of what once was.Â
You couldnât help itâyou shared your enthusiasm with him anyway. It was greedy. Maybe you just wanted to get a reaction out of him. Something. Anything. âYou know, Naro?â
Another nod.Â
âWell, theyâre related,â you explained. âNaro is his great-great-grandfather or something.âÂ
A strange smile painted itself on Christopherâs lips, this place that was once so, so familiar to you. âWow,â was all he said, with a sigh he tried to conceal.Â
Every second without a burst of anger was like another blade in your heart.Â
âWhat a coincidence,â you chose to say. You did not know what to say, but you knew you had to say more. You knew it had to be youâit always had to be you. Who soothed the awkwardness of conversations. It was your ball and chain, your burden, your duty. âAre things okay at Riverside? I wouldnât have expected you at this time of the day.âÂ
Chris went to the fridge to pour himself a glass of pineapple juice. You could tell it was out of nervousnessâhe needed to be moving because it was easier than standing there and looking you in the eyes. You couldnât blame him.Â
âEverythingâs fine with the campground,â he replied, and he sounded a bit more like Chris then. He drank his juice and put the glass in the dishwasher, turning to you. âI came to see you.â
Your heart jumped but you immediately caught it, making sure to give it a good kick as a warning. Christopher was more than your husbandâyour lives had been intertwined for as long as you could remember. There was a plethora of reasons why he would have wanted to see you and the scenario in which he suddenly loved you again was the least possible of them all.Â
Your words got lost somewhere between your brain and your lips, falling back into your throat as that lump that was still stuck there made breathing difficult. You gulped, staring at Chris as he made his way back to you, closer than he had been, studying you. âI worry about you,â he said under his breath. âWhenâs the last time you had a real meal?âÂ
This wasnât new. There were times when you figured Chris possibly felt guilty about not loving you anymore so he overcompensated in other ways. You hated those thoughts. You hated that they lingered in your brain, no matter how hard you tried to push them away. You wouldnât want him to know you felt that way. It was so ugly, so awful.Â
âDid you eat breakfast?â he insisted.Â
âI had coffee,â you recalled, realizing you couldnât answer his first question.Â
âYou donât look well. Sit down.â Gently, Chris nudged you towards the nearest chair. âYour dad called me. Heâs worried, too.â With this, he proceeded to grab food from the fridge. By the look of it, he was making you a turkey sandwich.Â
âAh, I understand your surprise visit now,â you sighed. Honest to god, you did not mean for it to come out as caustic as it did. You really were an awful wife. When the hell was he going to divorce you, for fuckâs sake?
âIâm not here just because of him,â Christopher went on, carefully spreading spicy mayo on your favorite bread. âIâm here because I know you lied to Jake. I spoke to him. I donât care that you lied to Jake to take the night shift,â he added, turning to you. âI just wish you didnât feel like you had to lie to me about something as insignificant as that.âÂ
You felt so small then, in your sunlit kitchen, sitting with your hands on your knees. You felt small and stupid and ridiculous, even. Of course.Â
âThere would have been a time you would have just told me,â he kept going, still making that fucking sandwich. âSo it made me worry.âÂ
Your fingernails sank into the skin of your thighs. You looked through the windowâfrom your point of view, all you could see was the sky and the trees in the backyard, which were beautiful. You liked this house. You wished it had been a happy one.Â
âI just wanted to be outside,â you admitted, and it was true.Â
âI know.â And you knew he knew. He knew that you liked spending nights outside to put your thoughts back in order, or as close to orderly as they could be anyway. âYou didnât have to lie to me, you know?â His voice was soft but firm at the same time. âYou never do.â
You buried your face into your hands. Chris was right. You fought the tears as best you could because you didnât want him to see you like that. Next thing you knew, gentle fingers were wrapping themselves around your wrists, pulling your hands away. He was right there. Chris. He had lowered himself to look you in the eyes, and he didnât do that often these days. You loved him in that moment, or maybe you loved the memory of what he used to be.
You did your best to memorize it all. The shape of his lips. The color of his eyes when the sun spilled into his irises. His scent. The feeling of his fingers on your skin. You didnât want to forget any of it, no matter how painful. You never wanted to forget what it had felt like to be loved by him.
âIâm sorry,â you whispered, your vision blurring.Â
âDonât.â A frown appeared between his brow, and he thumbed a stray tear away as it rolled down your cheek. âJust tell me if I need to call Dr. Carroll.âÂ
The therapist you saw from time to time, no more than once a year, mostly to appease your father. You had nothing against him. Dr. Carroll was an excellent psychotherapist, itâs just that it was a waste of time for you. Nothing would ever fix you. Nothing.
You flinched, understanding the implications of what Chris was saying.
âIâm not going to kill myself if thatâs what youâre thinking.âÂ
It was him who recoiled this timeâChris physically pulled back a few inches, letting go of you. He hated it. He couldnât stand it when you said those words out loud, but after having them haunt your mind for so long, you were familiar with them. Chris seemed to believe life was sacred. You believed that too, once. Maybe. Happiness had never found you easily but maybe you used to think something like that at least when Judith lived inside you.Â
Any parent would tell you the sameâif they lost their child, they wouldnât want to keep going. Simple as that.Â
But you went on. For some reason. And now you were here in this kitchen, with your husband staring at you like you were a horror movie, and maybe you were.Â
âDonât say that.â Chris stood, returning to his sandwich-making duties. âYou know I hate it when you say that.âÂ
In some ways, you envied him. His sorrow was undeniable but presented itself so differently than yours. It was as though Chris had this urgency to live, and to live fully. Like doing otherwise would be a dishonor to Judith. You felt the complete opposite of that. Itâs not that you wanted to dieâitâs just that you didnât know how to exist in a way that didnât fill you with shame, so you were stuck somewhere between two worlds.Â
âI know. Iâm sorry,â you mumbled as Chris slid a plate in front of you. You stared at the sandwich like you had never seen a sandwich before, or like you had seen a million.Â
âItâs alright.â Chris put his hand on your head and ruffled your hair a little. Gently. Kindly. Almost like he still loved you. âIâll call your dad to tell him youâre fine.â The smell of his cologne blended with the scent of the outdoors that clung to him. He had been around someone who mowed a lawn and you knew what that meant. âI have maintenance tonight but wanna have dinner at Marleneâs tomorrow? Some of the staff will be going to celebrate the season.âÂ
He did that sometimes. When he pitied you. Or maybe it was for other, more complicated reasons. It didnât matterâyou fell for it almost every time.Â
âSure, why not?â You did love Marleneâs cooking, and it was always comforting at the campground restaurant. It had been renovated since but it reminded you of your childhood nonethelessâbonus if Chris was present.Â
Chris nodded and proceeded to put the ingredients back into the fridge. He took his time but you knew it was just because he wanted to make sure you were actually eating the sandwich. It was good. He had used all the things you liked. You ate it while staring at the sky and sometimes at him.
But he got a text from Jeonginâthere was a problem back at the campground, something minor about an electric panel. So Chris left. He wished you a good rest of your day and said, âIâll see you later,â and he left. And the paper bag with watercolors was still on the table and he hadnât been angry about it, or jealous, and you wish he had been.Â
How greedy of you.Â
You ate your sandwich in the empty, quiet house. And then you put the plate in the dishwasher and headed out, driving the short ride to Riverside Campground while listening to the local radio station. It wasnât particularly good but it was distracting enough that while it played, your brain wasnât full of stuff. You knew it was effective as soon as you turned the engine off because the noise in your mind came back.
One might have believed you were a religious woman if they could hear your thoughts as you walked through the camping ground, holding this paper bag. They were closer to prayer than to rational thinking.
I hope he wonât be there. I hope Minho also wonât be there. But deeper, quieterâI mean, Iâd like to see Hyunjin again. I hope I donât see Chris around. I hope he cancels dinner tomorrow so I donât have to pretend to be alright around him. I hope I see him tonight. Maybe I should call Dad and ask him to come for dinner at Marleneâs, too. And then, when the familiar sound of an electric lawn trimmer echoed from one side of the campground, you decided to go the other way, even though it would add twenty minutes to your walk. I donât really feel like seeing Summer today. Chris will probably be with her. I donât hate her. I wish I hated her. I wish I was her friend. I wish Chris had been angry at me.
It all came down to the same thingâthe thoughts were expressed with different words but they held a similar hidden meaning, which was that you wished you were somebody else. Or rather that you werenât you. Maybe life would be less complicated if you werenât⌠that. If you werenât a woman selfish enough to secretly want her husband to be jealous because she bought art supplies for a handsome young man while secretly wishing this aforementioned handsome young man somehow remembered her at all. The same way she remembered him. Which is to say, a way that involved her lips and maybe her hair, and the way her body felt against his.
How greedy of you.Â
Before you knew it, you were walking on the path leading to the RV shared by Hyunjin and Minho. It was mid-afternoon on a bright sunny day and regardless of your abstract, prayer-like thoughts, you really didnât imagine anyone would be there. Realistically speaking. You figured youâd leave the bag somewhere near the door, hidden from view, and go back. Maybe youâd go hang out at the shop or at the park office. Most people spent the day doing all sorts of outdoor activities before coming back to rest in the evenings.Â
Needless to say, you found yourself a little puzzled when you saw that Minho was standing outside the RV. Though a part of your brain reminded you that people were free to do whatever the hell they wanted to do with their time, you still found it strange. You allowed yourself to observe him as you walked, slowing down your pace. He was taking things from larger containers to put them in a fancy backpack. There was a radio playing at a low volume somewhere inside the RV, the sound of it spilling from the open windows.Â
That didnât stop him from hearing you as you approached. To be fair, this was the quietest part of the entire campsite. âWe missed you at breakfast,â was all he said at first.
You were far away enough that you thought you misheard him. Surely you must have misheard him. âExcuse me?â You picked up a pace, finding yourself curious and eager to see where this conversation was going.Â
âBuh-reak-fast,â Minho repeated, exaggerating his pronunciation. âI made food for you!âÂ
He looked up from his task then, studying you from where you stood, which was a few feet away. He put the backpack down, leaning against the RV, adopting a comfortable, nonchalant posture, which invited a conversation.Â
You took a step closer, a frown appearing over your eyes as they danced around the perimeter as though they were looking for something. Or someone. And maybe they were. But you didnât want to be looking for anything so you focused on the man before you, only no words came to your mind and even less on your tongue.Â
His inquisitive expression turned a shade darker as his eyes squinted. âYou didnât think I meant it when I gave you the invite, did you?â
You gulped, wondering if you were an open book for just about anybody who came across you. âI meanââ But nothing else came, so you pressed your lips together, your heart beating erratically.Â
âHyunjin was right I guess,â Minho sighed. âHe said you wouldnât come because you probably thought I was just being polite,â he added as an explanation. âHe said you guys spent some time together last night.âÂ
âHe told you that?â But really you meant, Hyunjin talked about me? And it was stupid. Naive.
âHe tends to be right about people. Annoys the shit out of me,â Minho sighed. âFor future reference, when I say something, itâs because I mean it, not because Iâm trying to be nice.âÂ
You nodded, giving yourself a few seconds to evade his gaze and let your cheeks cool off. âNoted.âÂ
As you came closer, it became evident that Minho was gathering fishing gear. He took a few instants to secure everything and zip up the backpack.Â
âIâm sorry,â you said, and you meant it. âI worked all night and then⌠Itâs true that I wasnât sure if I should come or not.âÂ
Minho offered you a gentle smile, motioning you to sit down. âDo you want lemonade? A beer?â
âNo, but thank you so much though.â You realized you spoke the words before really thinking them over. You were just used to staying away from people, especially strangers. âI just came here to drop this.â You gave the paper bag a little shake. âIs Hyunjin here?âÂ
âHeâs around.â Minho scanned the area, twisting his neck. âHe said he was gonna walk by the river. Is that for him?â
âJust a little something.â You could leave it right here. Only you didnât. âIâll try to find him. Thank you,â you added with a smile that you almost meant.Â
You followed the same path you had last night when you unexpectedly smelled weedâyou went over the short fence and landed on the soft grass, the feeling of it familiar underneath the soles of your sandals. Today, the air smelled like the first few days of summer, when the trees and plants were still a little shy but undeniably alive. You remembered feeling like this, once.Â
Around you, the river was just as alive too, flowing urgently and sparkling under the bright sun. You held onto the handle of the bag as you walked cautiously, still wondering what the hell you were doing here. And also, what the hell you would tell Hyunjin.
Your train of thought came to a stop abruptly when you heard his voice. It came to you faintly at first, as though it was carried by the wind. But you kept going, reaching the spot where you could see the space where you and Hyunjin had been last night.
He was there today again, sitting on the big boulder, his phone to his ear and a closed sketchbook with a few pencils on his lap. He wore knee-length jean shorts and a loose, white tee. You wondered if Hyunjinâs beauty ever didnât look effortless.Â
The silence lasted long enough that you thought the call had ended, but then he spoke again, in Korean. You didnât understand what he was saying but you caught the tone of it, the shakiness of his voice. You felt it somewhere within you like an echo, like you had heard it before but on your own lips.Â
He said a word thenâDaraâand you knew it wasnât a word. You knew it was a name. He spoke it with pain and with love, and it seemed like you understood the sorrow you had seen in the manâs brown eyes.Â
Dara.Â
Who was she? A lover, obviously. Only a lover would evoke such deep emotion in someone, and you could hear that in his voice. Was she his girlfriend? Ex-girlfriend? Future girlfriend?Â
And then it hit youâit was violent enough that you had to retreat and hold onto the fence behind you, hiding to make sure Hyunjin wouldnât see you after you let out a faint gasp.Â
Resentment. The painting. The two lovers, bound together by pain and tragedy. And all of the other paintings about love that you had seen on Hyunjinâs page, like the one whose background was a deep Alizarin Crimson, only the background spilled over the two subjects who were kissing, turning them red, too. Hyunjinâs perspective on love was soul-stirring, sentimental, painful. Only somebody who went through true heartbreak would feel this wayâor be able to recognize it in others.Â
The greedy, ugly part of you wished Hyunjinâs heart didnât belong so ardently to this Dara so that he would fall in love with you someday. Or maybe not fall in love with youâmaybe just⌠whatever it was that people did these days. You werenât exactly sure what it was. It seemed like everybody was in some sort of situationship with someone they met on an app. The others were waiting for their crush to get out of the situationship they were in. It wasnât that you wanted Hyunjin to love youâit wasnât even that you wanted Hyunjin to desire you. Well, it would be nice if he did, but he looked like a young god so there was no chance this would ever happen.Â
Itâs just that he had seen you.
For the first time in a long, long time, you had let him see parts of you that you hadnât let anybody else see, and he hadnât pushed you away. He had told you that your souls had colors in it. He had shown you kindness. And then he held you in his arms, even just for that brief instant.
Once a year, sometimes twice but rarely, you went out of town to some shitty bar just because. You sat there at the counter and at some point into the night, when all the pretty girls had disappeared, a man would buy you a drink. You let him buy you the drink and it never went any further. At most you thanked him, but you rarely even did that. It was just some sort of reminder that maybe, just maybe, someone would want you again. Someday. If you werenât with Chris anymore.Â
Last night, stupidly, had felt like the equivalent of that, but betterâlike Hyunjin had bought you a drink after seeing all of your wounds and deciding he didnât mind them all that much maybe.
But he said her name again on the phone. Dara. She must be beautiful. Surely, she was. Surely, his whole entire heart belonged to her, with the way he painted love so raw and powerful, and red, and real.Â
You did the only thing that made sense thenâyou turned around and walked back, cursing yourself for being like this. A traitor to your husband and your dead daughter. You went over the fence and walked the path back to the RV. Minho was still there, scrolling his phone and sitting on a camping chair.Â
âHe wasnât there? I mean heâs a good swimmer but I hope he didnât fall in the river,â he started jokingly but he was serious.Â
âHeâs on the phone,â you replied, putting the paper bag on the steps near the RV door. âIt seemed important, so Iâll just leave this here.âÂ
âOh.â Minho frowned as he was thinking things over. âWant me to give him a message then?â
âNot really, itâs pretty straightforward.â You took a deep breath. For courage. The air still smelled like the world should be beautiful.Â
âAnother time for breakfast then, miss boss?â
âAnother time,â you said as you walked away, the sun burning your eyes and your skin. Things were simpler at night. Emotions were simpler to conceal. You hoped Minho didnât read your face accurately because you werenât proud of the things going on in your mind. It had been a mistake to come hereâto let your heart off its leash. The kind of mistake it was almost impossible to unmake.
The day after, you kept yourself busy with things around the campsite. Phone calls to contractors for last-minute repairs and then overseeing those repairs, sometimes with Chris, sometimes not. You spent a lot of time at the park office doing paperwork because it kept your mind off things while making you feel productive. And the office was air-conditioned, which was a great incentive. You sat at the counter and chatted with Jake and with the clients he welcomed in. You stopped by the shop too, to make sure everything was stocked up.Â
You called your father. Well, your father called you first but you were with one of the contractors and couldnât take the call, so technically you called your father back. He said Chris invited him for dinner tonight but he wasnât sure he could make it because your aunt had broken her wrist and he had told her he would help her out. Itâs fine Dad, you assured him. You were too busy here at Riverside to go visit your aunt after her bad fall and you were glad to know her brother would be there for her.Â
It was only well into adulthood that you had wondered what it was like to have a siblingâyou had never needed one before because you grew up with Christopher. He was a part of your family and you a part of his. You sort of wished you had a sister now, someone who would be able to advise you on the situation you were in. Which wasnât even a situation, you reminded yourself. It was more like a string of situation after situation, a whirlpool of events that you found yourself stuck in and you couldnât get out of.Â
The sun was beginning to descend onto the horizon when people started telling the group chat they were headed to Marleneâs. You took care of closing up the park office while Jake headed out, taking your time. Chrisâ mom stopped on her way to the shop to say helloâshe would take care of the general shop while the staff had dinner. You had the feeling that she had offered just so you didnât have an excuse not to go. And you knew that people did that with good intentions so you didnât resent them for it, not really. You just wished they let you decide what was good for you and what wasnât.Â
Still, you made your way to the campsite restaurant. It was maybe your favorite time of the day, when the sun was low enough that its light shone a pretty shade of amber, filtering through tree branches, illuminating the world with warm incandescence. It was the sort of lighting you always looked for when visiting a museum and viewing paintingsâyou liked to see it recreated on canvases. Renoir had been particularly good at this, although today his paintings carried a commercial reputation, often disdained by art lovers over the world. You could understand that his styleâsaccharine and bright and saturatedâwas not for everybody, but you never understood those who claimed he was not a talented painter. In any case. He painted light just the way you liked to see it.Â
Sometimes you liked to imagine how people would paint the moments you were in. Like right now. This sunset, this path you were walking on, the people around you. Tired parents and tired children, exerted after a day spent at the pool or the waterpark. Young couples coming back from a hike, older couples taking a leisurely walk after dinner before heading to their RV for an early night in. You had grown up in this place and you had seen more people in it than you could ever remember, but all of them were beautiful in their own way, and all of them, you felt like, would be the perfect subjects for a Renoir-like painting. With the remnants of sunlight caressing their hair or their cheekbones or their lips.
A lot of people were already at the restaurant when you got in. A few campsite patrons, of course, but most of them were done with dinner at this hour, leaving enough space for the staff. You ignored the four tables occupied by them at first, crossing the dining room to say hi to the kitchen staff, asking if they would join you, too. You got a few yeses and a few noes, but Marlene thanked you sincerely for the offer, mentioning that Chris had offered the same. Of course he had. Chris would never, ever leave anybody behind.Â
You went to sit with the others, choosing the empty seat next to Allieâs. You were surprised to see her as she rarely participated in such events. She asked about your day as you got settled in, pretending not to notice that Chris was at the other side of the four tables brought together, sitting with Summer, her father, as well as Jake and Jaime, who he got along with.Â
âHey boss,â Jeongin said with his usual brightness.Â
âHey,â you responded, doing your best to make your smile believable, but by now you were pretty sure you were rather good at it.Â
âI wanted to say thank you for the other night.â His cheeks turned pink, which you found adorable. âIt was fun.â
âIâm glad to hear it. Though, if you donât ask Lucy out by the end of this summer, Iâll run out of patience.âÂ
The pink on the young manâs cheeks became a little darker and he hid behind his glass of soda for a few seconds, taking a large sip from it. âIâIââ he stammered, searching for his words.Â
Your smile became genuine then. It reminded you of the first few weeks with Chris when you still couldnât believe he had been in love with you for all these years and yet at the same time you couldnât believe you hadnât seen it before, because it was so obvious.
âIâm just joking of course,â you added softly. âBut sheâs a nice girl, isnât she?â
âShe is, boss.â Jeongin nodded. He smiled, looking at the table while he ran his thumb over a scratch on the wooden surface. âI just figured, you know. It might be weird with her dad and stuff.âÂ
Christopher had told you the same thing once. You couldnât help but feel immense empathy for Jeonginâyou squeezed his hand in yours, inviting him to look you in the eyes. You had known him for a while now and you did believe to have a good relationship with him. He was among your most trusted employees, and you knew he looked up to Chris a lot.Â
âYouâre a good man,â you told him, keeping your voice low so as not to be heard by anyone other than Allie and Jeongin. âIf my daughter were to date someone like you, I would be happy.âÂ
Jeongin froze in his seat as the weight of your words reached him. Allie put a comforting hand on your shoulder, perhaps sensing that you needed it. Jeongin knew. About you. About Chris. About the rift between you two. Maybe he didnât know the extent of it but he knew enough to understand how difficult it had been for you to say the words my daughter out loud and you could see the gratitude in his eyes.Â
âThank you, boss,â he said under his breath. âLet me get you a drinkââÂ
âNo, no itâs fine.â You shook your head. âDinnerâs on me anyway. On us,â you added, a little louder, looking at Chris. âRight?âÂ
âOf course,â Chris replied without hesitation. âIâm starving, shall we order?â
A few people got up to the counter to give their orders while a few others stayed back as they figured out what they wanted. Jeongin kept looking over his shoulder, glancing at you, almost like he was worried.
âThat was a kind thing for you to say,â Allie told you. âHe likes you guys a lot.â
âWe like him too. I meant what I said.â
Allie sighed faintly, her hand returning to your shoulder for a quick squeeze. âYou seem a little better than the other morning,â she pointed out.Â
You remembered the river and the common loons and the sunrise, and your heart as it was being reignited.Â
âDidnât you say I looked less melancholic the other morning?â you questioned, using Allieâs exact words.
âYes. But you also looked like you felt bad about it,â she explained. Allie was very directâsomething she said had come after losing her husband, as she had been a very reserved and closed-off person who kept her opinions to herself before. âWould you like to come by for coffee sometime? We could have a chat, just you and I. Away from here.â
It sounded like a good idea in theory. You knew that you needed it. You knew that you couldnât possibly make sense of all these thoughts spinning in your mind on your own. Youâd need someone else, with an outsiderâs perspective, to guide you through them.Â
You also knew, essentially, what she would tell you. What anybody would tell you. Because you knew what you would tell a friend of yours in that situation.
Some things you just werenât ready to hear.
You were picking at a dinner you werenât particularly hungry for, listening to the lively conversations around you and letting them make you feel alive when you heard the bell of the restaurant door ringing. At first, you didnât even look upâyou only did so when you noticed that Christopherâs voice quieted down. So naturally, you glanced at him to see if something was wrong, maybe expecting him to be looking deep into Summerâs eyes with a loving gaze. But he was looking in the direction of the door, where two men stood, speaking in low voices in a foreign language.Â
Tonight, Hyunjinâs hair was in a low bun that rested on the nape of his neck. He wore loose, comfortable clothesâa T-shirt and shorts. Minho wore a similar outfit. The two of them had a rugged look to them that you hadnât necessarily seen before, hinting that they had spent the better part of the day outside.Â
Your heart did a stupid little jump in your chest as you watched them scan the room, looking for the best seats. When Hyunjin finally turned to you and caught sight of you, his expression changed. It softened and yet became unreadable, the way a lake would freeze in the winter months, its surface becoming smooth and solid, yet you knew there was much going on underneath.
Minho waved at you and it took you a few seconds to wave back. Hyunjin offered you a smile that you werenât sure what it meant but you also smiled back, clearing your throat as they walked away, invited to order their food by a Marlene who was eager to give good service to her clients. And to go home for the night as soon as possible.Â
âYou know these gentlemen?â Allie asked, trying to sound as innocent as she could and failing miserably. âI donât think Iâve seen them before this year, but one of them came by the shop to buy worms this morning.âÂ
So they did go fishing after all.Â
You cleared your throat again, unable to resist a glance at the other side of the table where Chris was as invested in his conversation as he had been earlier, now sitting with Jeongin and Summer and discussing a TV series they all particularly enjoyed. He did glance back at you, just half a second. Just through the corner of his eyeâit was so imperceptible that you might have made it up, just like you wanted him to be jealous yesterday.
You took all the time in the world to bite into your pizza and carefully chew it.Â
âI mean theyâre clients,â you replied, taking a large sip of soda to chase it down.
âAs are hundreds of people on this campground and not all of them say hello to you,â Allie pointed out. âTheyâre quite handsome, arenât they?â
You choked on your sodaâbadly enough that it prompted Hyunjin, who was ordering his food, to look in your direction. You pretended you didnât see him.Â
âWe had a chat, yes,â you told Allie. You knew better than to lie to her. And why would you lie? Itâs not like there was anything to lie about anyway. âOne of them is related to my favorite painter. What a coincidence, right?â
âItâs so cute how you love art. You should go back to Paris,â Allie said with a firm nod. It was one of the first things you ever told her when you met Allie. How you had loved visiting all of the museums in Paris when you traveled there for your honeymoon. Chris had preferred the vineyards in the south of France, but it had been a lovely time. Maybe the happiest you had ever been.
âThis place isnât gonna run itself,â you pointed out. âAnd Iâm not going to put it all on Christopherâs shoulders,â you added when you saw that Allie was about to talk back.
She made a face that showed how she understood what you meant and returned to her food. You ate too, silently, only speaking when directly spoken to, glancing at the other side of the dining room where Hyunjin and Minho were having dinner. You thought that maybe once or twice, you caught them glancing back but it had to be a coincidenceâor rather, your group were the only other people in the diner by now and some were quite loud at times, and, of course, it would cause someone to look this way. Right?Â
It lasted a whileâno more than fifteen minutes. You sat there, wondering whether you should get up and go talk to them. To Minho, but to Hyunjin, too. Wondering what you would say to him anyway. Wondering if you were upset that he hadnât come talk to you after you bought him painting supplies. But you couldnât possibly be upset about this, could you? What kind of person would that make you?Â
Jeongin left firstâhe was off duty tonight and you knew he needed the rest. Allie left right after him since sheâd need to be up early to open the shop tomorrow morning. It allowed you to also gather your things and walk awayâleaving in the middle, neither the first nor the last, would ensure some sort of camouflage. It would leave you unnoticed. It would not raise questions.Â
So you gathered your things and brought your plates back into the kitchen yourself to rinse them yourself but Marlene basically threw you out, claiming you were wearing the wrong attire to be on this side of the counter, but really you knew she just wanted you to take it easy. You still took a few instants to inquire about her walk-in inventory, making sure she wasnât going to run out of anythingâit seemed like the campground was especially full this week.Â
The dining room was almost empty when you went back. Chris, Summer, and Jake were the only three people left.
Hyunjin and Minho were gone, their table empty and clean.Â
âEveryone wanted me to say bye and goodnight,â Chris told you. âWeâre getting beers with the kitchen staff,â he added, waving his beer bottle at you. You knew he would only drink one because Chris was on duty for the night.Â
âIâll head home, Dad said heâd call me to update me about Martha.âÂ
âI hope your auntâs gonna be alright,â Summer blurted out. She rarely spoke to you these days and you knew why. You understood why. She wanted to fuck your husband and she was actually mature and kind enough to feel bad about it. âSheâs so sweet.âÂ
âShe is sweet but sheâs also stubborn as fuck, so sheâll be just fine,â you retorted, finding it surprisingly easy to act like a human being around her. Maybe it was out of despair. âYou guys have a nice nightââ
You walked out of the diner as you spoke and surprise muted the last syllable of your sentence. The door fell closed behind you, the familiar bell ringing with it as you found yourself outside again. The sun had disappeared behind the horizon but its light lingered as it did in the summer, unrelenting and unrelentingly beautiful. The highest point of the sky had turned a dull gray, but everything below was a lovely gradient of lavender, blue, and golden shades.Â
In any case.
Hyunjin was waiting for you, leaning against the trunk of a larch tree.Â
The reason you knew he was waiting for you is because he straightened up as soon as you exited Marleneâs diner, putting his phone in the pocket of his shorts. Something inside you made you glance around and look for Minho, but he was nowhere to be seen.Â
âHey,â Hyunjin started. A smile as enigmatic as the sunset sky hung on his graceful lips. âAre you going somewhere? I meanâdo you have like a minute or two for me?âÂ
You realized you had frozen in place when you saw him walk towards you and it prompted you to move, too. As though you wanted to put some distance between you and the diner. Or rather, the people in it.Â
âYâYeah, no, uh, no, Iâm not really going anywhere,â you managed, blinking slowly as you stopped in your tracks once you stood in front of Hyunjin. It was as though you had forgotten how tall he was and how broad his shoulders were. Like he wasnât quite the same person from a distance as opposed to just a few inches away from you.
âCool, thanks.â His teeth sank into his bottom lip for just a few seconds as he averted his gaze, quickly taking a posture that hinted he was looking for a place to sit down.Â
He located a bench on the other side of the larch tree, which faced the river. It was a quiet little spot and you often saw people sitting on this bench, eating ice cream cones and chatting while looking at the water in front of them. He invited you to join him there with one motion of his long arm and you followed him with a glance for the diner over your shoulder.Â
âDid you have a nice dinner?â you asked, impatient to break the ice. Your heart was beating fast in your chest, your pulse shallow, rendering your breath a little short. âSeems like you guys spent the day outside.âÂ
Hyunjin nodded, his smile returning to his lips. âMin wanted to go fishing and he made me go with him.â
âYou mean he physically dragged you to the boat and threw you on it?â you asked playfully, tilting your head to the side.Â
âExactly like that. It was more like a kidnapping,â Hyunjin added in the same humorous tone. There was a pause then, maybe to allow both of you to get used to one another and to the quietness of the world. âDinner was excellent, yes,â he said finally. âYou too?â
âI wasnât too hungry,â you admitted. âBut I never didnât enjoy a meal at Marleneâs.âÂ
âI bet Iâll say the same by the end of the summer.â Hyunjin sat more comfortably on the bench, laying his arm on the backrest.Â
You gave him a nod and a non-committal hum as a response, unsure where to go from there. You enjoyed the momentary silence between you two, noticing the little details about him. The way he was fidgeting with the zipper of his backpack, the gracefulness of his fingers. The honey color of his skin, now sunkissed after a day outside. The wind in the stray strands of his hair. You had never seen anyone like Hyunjin before, and it made you wonder if you would ever see someone like him after.
âHow was fishing?â you inquired, but it turned out that Hyunjin spoke at the exact same time as you.
âI wanted to say thank you,â he said simultaneously. âOh,â he added in the awkwardness of the moment.
âOh,â you added also, your cheeks turning warm despite the ambient air turning cool.Â
Another silence fell upon the two of you. You sat there on the bench, facing the river with your two hands on your knees and your heart in your throat. In that moment, you remembered the time you got so sick Chris had to drive you to urgent care. It was a few years back. It was the first winter after losing Judith. You hadnât known at first that you were ill. You were fatigued, you had headachesânothing out of the ordinary for you. It escalated a little and you needed medical care before you realized it. But you really hadnât known.Â
It wasnât about being in denial. You werenât in denial that something was happening to you right now. That you felt some kind of way about the man sitting next to you on this bench. You just couldnât pinpoint what it wasâyou had known nothing but grief and sorrow for so long that you didnât think you could recognize anything that wasnât it. You didnât think there was space in your heart for anything that wasnât it.Â
âUhâŚâ Hyunjin started again, cautious, carefully unzipping the front pocket of his backpack. âYeah, so. Iâll just say it. I wanted to say thank you for what you did for me.â
That caught you off guard. âWhat I did for you?âÂ
âYou brought me paint tubes and paper and brushes and all that stuff,â he said, speaking very slowly as though you were suffering from amnesia and he needed to remind you of these things. âYou bought these things for me. They were all brand new.âÂ
âOh, itâs nothing.â
âItâs nothing?â He cocked his head to the side.
âWell you asked for them at the shop didnât you?â you retorted. âYouâre a painter. A really good one at that. Obviously you need paint.âÂ
Hyunjin stared at you for a few seconds, his gaze lingering in unusual places like your hair or the straps of your sundress, or the diner behind you.Â
âBut I know they donât sell stuff like that in Stormhaven because we looked for it before we asked for it here at the shop,â Hyunjin explained, still in this slow, very teacher-like tone. âSo you went somewhere else.â
âYes,â you replied in the same voice, wondering if he took you for an idiot and if you should be offended, but something in his eyes told you that you shouldnât. âI know a great art store a couple of towns over andââ
He interrupted you. âHow long did it take you to get there?âÂ
âWhat?â What kind of conversation was that even?
âHow long did you drive to get to that art supplies shop? Because I checked online for art stores in the immediate area and there arenât any,â Hyunjin insisted, waving his phone to emphasize his point.
You blinked slowly. It seemed like so many steps on his part just for a few tubes of paint. At least thatâs what your brain was telling you, reminding you that nothing meant anything, that life was just a series of events that were or werenât interconnected.
âI donât know,â you managed with a shrug. âAn hour maybe.â
âAn hour and then another hour to come back,â Hyunjin repeated, more like a statement than a question. âYou did all of that just for me, a stranger. So why are you saying itâs nothing? Itâs really not nothing to me.âÂ
He seemed a little upset. Like you had just dismissed him in some way.
You blinked again and it was like you were seeing him for the first time. Like you were seeing everything else for the first time, too.
Because you had been just about to lie to him. Which is what you would have done normally. You would have said that you had an appointment in that area and that you were going anyway. You would have said that you were meeting a friend who lived over there for coffee and had gone shopping with her and thought, Well, why not? Why shouldnât I buy a few supplies? as you walked past them. It was like second nature to youâyou didnât even think about it. It just happened the same way breathing did.
As though you didnât want people to know you had gone out of your way for them. Not Hyunjin, but not Chris either, not even your father. It had been the same with your mom too, and so many others. What an awful thing. As though you were ashamed of how much you loved other people, how deeply you cared about them.
Because your lies werenât inherently evil didnât make you any less of a liar. And you hated liars. You hated lies and deception and anything that wasnât the truth. What did that mean about yourself?
How many other parts of yourself had you concealed? How much of your soul was buried deep enough that nobodyânot even yourselfâwould ever find it?Â
Hyunjin relaxed all of a suddenâhis shoulders turned limp. âSorry,â he said under his breath. âI didnât mean to sound angry.âÂ
You must have had a strange expression on your face for his entire demeanor to switch like that. You gulped.Â
âYou were right to be,â you admitted, suddenly feeling very small and very stupid. You were realizing something important about yourself and it seemed like you ought to be alone during this moment. âYouâre not nothing.â You paused then, just to take a deep breath. To give yourself a little courage. âI wanted you to have what you needed so that you could paint. I like your work, or what Iâve seen of it,â you explained slowly, your gaze fixated on the slow-moving water before you. âAnd I had a good time the other night. When we sat by the river.âÂ
âI had a good time too.â Finally, after playing with it for minutes, Hyunjin unzipped the front pocket of his backpack. âItâs just. Kindness isnât nothing.â He was speaking at a low volumeâlow enough that you could barely hear him. But you could hear him, and you listened. âThere are many people who make me feel like Iâm not worth it, but you drove all this way to get me paint and it means a lot to me. So I made a little something for you.â
With that, Hyunjin pulled something out of his backpack. You recognized it immediately as the aquarelle paper pad you bought for himâat that sight, your heart picked up a pace again. He opened the notepad, flipping through the first few pages on which you caught a glance of some sketches. There wasnât much color on them, but it was quite the opposite for the page he stopped at.
Carefully, he tore that page off the pad and handed it to you. âThere. Just a little something to say thank you.âÂ
You took the sheet from him, your gaze going from his face to his painting and back to him as though you couldnât believe it. And yet you were now holding a painting that Hyunjin had made. The paper felt heavier than it should have in your hand. You studied it, trying to take in the sight of it all at once, but you couldnât stop noticing the tiniest details. The night sky and its lifelike colors. It wasnât just any night skyâit was yours. It was the one over your head night after night. With the stars and a few hazy clouds adding some purple to the inky dark blue. The moon could be seen behind the clouds, hiding and yet visible. Beautiful nonetheless.
The painting depicted a river also but not just any riverâthis river, the river you saw and heard and smelled every day. You recognized it. You recognized the riverbank and the intricate curves of it, you recognized exactly where this was. But there was so much to see. The delicate reflections of the light spilling from the windows of the cabins in the distance, on the other side of the water. The stars and how bright they shone. The tall grass and the reeds just shadows in the night but recognizable anyway.Â
The evergreens. One in the foreground, one you couldnât see entirely. Just some branches. The rest could be imagined. You knew because you knew which tree it was. It was a black spruce and whip-poor-wills liked to rest on its lower branches to sing their nocturnal song. The rest of the forest was more of a blur in the background as it was in real lifeâjust like the mountains on the other side of the river.
To Hyunjin, it was just a painting depicting a corner where he had spent some time one evening, but to you, it meant so much more. This was the exact spot where you came across him the other night and had that long conversation with him. It was the first time you admitted to someoneâof your own volition, not because they had heard something from somebody elseâabout the darkness that resided within you. The sorrow that lingered. That night was the first time you had allowed someone to really see you since you lost Judith.Â
And you had never really expected it to happen. As in, you never thought youâd actually let someone see you in a vulnerable state again, but you just assumed that if you did, they wouldnât stay around for long. It was just too heavy. You were just too heavy, like a fire sucking the air out of a room, suffocating everybody inside.
And yet Hyunjin was here tonight with gentleness in his eyes and paint on aquarelle paper.Â
âOh wow,â you managed after a while, your throat tight. You stared up at him. âHyunjin, itâs⌠itâs so nice of you, thatâsâŚâ For some reason, at that moment you remembered his portfolio and his Insta page and realized you were holding an artwork of great value in your hands. âItâs beautiful. It looks just like it, too. That place.âÂ
âI painted it from memory,â he explained. âIt was my view that night, while we talked.â He hesitated, his eyes going from the sheet in your hand to the notepad he held. âI painted another one too.âÂ
Intrigued, you watched as he opened the pad once again, going through pages until he found what he was looking for. His cheeks had turned the color of summer cherries when he handed it to you.Â
Your entire body, it seemed, caught on fire when you grabbed it.Â
To put it simply, Hyunjin had painted you.Â
It was another painting depicting a scene from that other night, with the same dark blue and purple sky, but in this one, the moon was out, and its light was illuminating the woman sitting on the grass. She sat elegantly, in a way you did not think you had sat, with her body slightly tilting at the back, resting on her two hands, her face turned towards the sky as though she was bathing in the moonlight. A couple of mini liquor bottles rested next to her, as well as a walkie-talkie.Â
It was you, except it couldnât be you, because you werenât this beautiful. Your hair floated in the night like a sirenâs would in the sea, or something like it, the light of the moon reflecting on it in Hyunjinâs expert brush strokes. You knew this must have been difficult to blend in watercolors and yet it looked seamless. Likelike.Â
No, not lifelike. Enhanced. Because you did not look like this. The curves of your body did not look pleasant like that, or appealing. Your posture was not the one of a demigoddess, and your lips did not have the color of a ripe peach. It was not like looking into a mirror, it felt more like staring at a stranger. The expression on your face was blurry due to the hazy aspects of watercolor but it was enough to see that it was complex. Deep. As though your sadness had beauty in it.Â
You sat there, staring at both pieces of art, speechless.Â
âI wanted to remember that night. And you,â you heard Hyunjin say. And he was very much there, right there, yet his voice came from another world.Â
There were so many words crowding your throat and shoving each other, racing to be the first to spill from your lips, that it took you several more seconds before you were able to speak at all.Â
âI donât know what to say,â you admitted under your breath, your voice weak and quivering.Â
âYou donât need to say anything,â Hyunjin pointed out, taking the notepad back from you. He didnât seem upset.Â
âNo, itâs justââ You began, stopping mid-sentence with a frown, your gaze following movement on the other side of the river. A bird. It was narrow here, and you recognized a member of the thrush family. Your mother would have known which, but you didnât. âYou painted me so pretty. Andââ You paused again, searching for the bird in the dense forest but the day was darkening fast. âItâs just that. That nightâitâit meant a lot for me. I never really talk about Judith. I donât want people to know about her. But I wanted you to know about her. Does that make sense?â
Hyunjin, who was putting his notepad back into his bag, came to a stop slowly, staring at you. Really staring at you. Not really like he was seeing you for the first time, rather like he was visiting a museum for the second time to see an exhibit there and understand it better.Â
âIt makes perfect sense,â he replied softly. âI understand because I felt the same.â
âLike you wanted me to know about that girl?âÂ
He nodded, zipping his backpack and leaving it on the ground, clearing his throat. âDara. Yeah.âÂ
Dara. So you were right about that name, about her. About the woman you thought was in his art, painted crimson and vermillion.Â
But you were a woman in one of his paintings too, now. And you did not know what to do about this.Â
âYouâre so nice, and kind, andââ You paused, sighing. âI donât understand how this could have happened to you.â And truly, you did not. She didnât want to love me back, he had said. What kind of person could that woman be to refuse someone like him?
But if you were to be fully honest with yourselfâalmost in an ugly, gruesome way. Werenât you building a cage around your own heart ever since you laid eyes on Hyunjin? Not even willing to admit to yourself that he was handsome? That his scent, blended with the smell of the outdoors, made prickles appear on your skin? That his sunkissed skin was inviting? That you wanted to run your fingers through his silky hair? Werenât you pretending that you hadnât felt anything when he helped you over the fence, just holding your arm, or even worse, when he hugged you? When he pressed you against his chest, embracing you? Werenât you pretending that you didnât feel it between your legs when his warm breath tickled your neck? Werenât you pretending that it didnât overwhelm you that he painted for you?
That he painted you? That he painted the texture of your skin, the curves of your body, and the way your shirt hugged your breasts?
âThings just happen, weâre not really meant to understand them I think,â Hyunjin wisely pointed out. âItâs also in our nature to try and understand them, though.â
âYouâre right,â you conceded. âTrying to find meaning in them.âÂ
Hyunjin nodded faintly. You both allowed silence to creep in between you two as the night covered the sky lazily. Frogs were beginning their night song here and there, some close, some farther. The sky was neither blue nor darkâthe lavender gray had taken over it for now, before nightfall would spill over the world. You used the last remnants of light to look at the painting Hyunjin gifted you once again.Â
âThis means a lot to me,â you murmured. âItâs just soâŚâ
âIâm glad you like it,â Hyunjin responded, looking around, perhaps searching for the frog that was singing nearby.Â
The other painting was stuck in your mind the way one was blinded by the sun if they looked at it for too long. No matter where you lookedâeven if you closed your eyes, it was still there, engraved in your retina.
Thisâall of thisâwas too much. The feelings you didnât want in your chest. The images haunting your eyes and your mind and your heart and your cunt, even. And somehow it wasnât enough, as though your dormant heart demanded more even.Â
âYou didnât sign it,â you pointed out, realizing Hyunjinâs signature didnât appear on the other side of the page either.Â
Hyunjin gave you an appraising look and you waited while he was coming up with an answer. You had seen his portfolio and his social media profiles. You had seen his art. He used to sign each of his paintings with his initialsâa simple but efficient HHJ in the bottom right corner of the canvas. And then at one point, he just stopped. It was around the time when he started incorporating more reds into his art.
âI could make an exception for you,â he said finally, retrieving a pen from his backpack. It was attached to what might have been a journal, or maybe it was a simple notebook.Â
âYou donât have to,â you assured. But he had already taken the sheet from you and was using the back of the notebook as a temporary table on which he lay his painting to apply his signature on the bottom right corner.
You looked for red in the painting. It was in the purple of the sky and in the warmth of the light coming from the cabins across the river. You remembered the other painting and the colors he had used to paint you. Your skin. Your lips.Â
He signed Hyunjin, just that, and gave it back to you.Â
âIâll cherish this all my life,â you said, and you knew it was true. Hell, it felt wrong to hold it just like that. You wanted to go home right now and store it carefully, somewhere safe.
But you also wanted to stay right here.Â
âDid you have dessert?â Hyunjin blurted out all of a sudden.Â
The question surprised youâyou turned to him as though he had spoken to you in a foreign language.Â
âDid you have dessert with your dinner?â he asked, motioning at the diner behind you. The lights had been turned on inside, illuminating his sunkissed face, highlighting the details of it. The curves of his lips and those of his nose. The softness in his eyes. âCould I buy you an ice cream?âÂ
For a second, then two, three, four, and five, you stared at him and he stared at you. It was not so much that you were reading himâperhaps you were trying to see your own reflection in his irises, as though you would understand his viewpoint. His eyes were the color of earth. Of rich soil on a rainy day. His eyes were the color of the bark of an oak tree dampened by dew on a late spring morning.Â
If you werenât greedy, maybe, youâd go home and forget all about tonight.
âNo, you canât buy me an ice cream,â you replied, suppressing a mischievous smile.Â
Taken aback, Hyunjin sat straight on the bench. âOhâitâs fine, Iââ
âFriends donât pay for ice cream here,â you interrupted him. âItâs always free. Iâll just⌠maybe Iâll go back to my car, I donât want to damage thisââ you added, showing him the precious painting you were still holding.Â
âIâll take care of it.â Hyunjin was putting the notebook and pen back into his bag. He slipped the painting between two pages of his notepad, freeing you of it. âIâll give it back after we eat.âÂ
âYou better,â you teased, standing up, followed by Hyunjin. âBet that thing will be worth thousands in a few years.âÂ
âI doubt that,â Hyunjin responded, hesitant, walking by your side and hiding behind his hair but you could see that he was blushing. âItâs just a tiny thing that I painted in the middle of a lake when Minho wasnât having me rowing the boat.âÂ
You chuckled, shaking your head. âDidnât Monet buy a whole boat so he could go on the Seine and paint from the water? Your argument is therefore invalid.âÂ
Hyunjin found absolutely nothing to sayâhe stared at you, dumbfounded, speechless.Â
âI just find it interesting that youâd do thisâpaint this, I mean, and give it to meâand act like itâs nothing,â you said with a shrug. âWhen not ten minutes ago, it was you who were scolding me for exactly the same thing? How did you word it already?â You pretended to think about it, only, you would never forget his words. âKindness isnât nothing.â
Hyunjin sighed and rolled his eyes as though he was exasperated, but his smile said otherwise. He raised his hands like one would raise a white flag. âYouâre right. Youâre right. You got me there.âÂ
âI was just joking anyway,â you reassured him. âI donât care what itâs going to be worth in ten or twenty years. I wonât sell it.âÂ
You had made it to the small ice cream shop located right next to Marleneâs diner. The owner, who was a good friend of your fatherâs, was putting the chairs away for the night. You liked Frankieâhe was like an uncle to you. He had been there for your father when your mom had passed. He had tried to be there for you when you had lost Judith, but you had not let him. You had not let anybody help you then, not even Chris.Â
âFrankie, did you turn off the machines?â you asked Frankie, grabbing a couple of the colorful folding chairs and bringing them to the tiny shed where he kept them.Â
âYou know I did not, Squishy.â He always called you like that. âAnd you know that even if I had, Iâd turn them back on for you.âÂ
You turned to Hyunjin, who had put his backpack on the steps leading to the ice cream parlor and was helping out with the chairs, without being asked, as though it was the most natural thing in the world.Â
Kindness isnât nothing.Â
âFrankie has been spoiling me since my early days,â you explained.Â
âWell, it was hard not to,â Frankie confessed, running a hand in his gray hair. It was all gray nowâyou could have sworn that just last summer, there was still brown in there. He seemed more tired than usual. âThose two kids kept coming to beg for ice cream. Sometimes, kids are so cute, you know? You just canât say no.âÂ
You and Chris. Chris and you. You used to be inseparableâall of your summers and weekends spent together, exploring the camping ground, always discovering more of its secrets. And regularly bargaining your way to an ice cream cone.Â
âSounds like sometimes you just canât say no even when theyâre all grown up,â Hyunjin added with a wink for Frankie. âGive me those,â he added for you, taking the two folded chairs you had just picked up. âI got this, Mr. Frankie, if you donât mind.âÂ
âOh, thank you, son. Thatâs very kind.â He turned to you. âThatâs a nice guy right there.â Â
The man gave Hyunjin a gentle squeeze on his shoulder and returned behind the counter of his ice cream parlor, disappearing momentarily while he was washing his hands. Frankie and his wife had struggled for a long time to have a childâthey had given up when their daughter, Lucy, had decided to show up. Their miracle, they called her. They were a little older than other parents when they had her but they were amazing parents anyway. Maybe better, wiser parents too. Lucy was the girl that Jeongin was so desperately crushing on, too. It was a lovely family.Â
âItâs fine I said,â Hyunjin insisted when you grabbed another chair. âIâll do it, okay?â
You stood in front of himâit was dark now, or at least the lights from the ice cream shop made the rest of the world seem like the nightâand you blinked, just staring at him.Â
âI can do it though. I help Frankie or other people around the campground often,â you replied.Â
âAre you going to fight me every time Iâm being nice to you?â Hyunjin grabbed the remaining four chairs and brought them over to the shed, carefully piling them over one another. âI know you can do it. Youâre wearing a nice dress, I didnât want you to get dirt on it.âÂ
You looked down, smoothing the fabric of your humble off-white, yellowish sundress, pulling it down as though you could cover your knees with it, suddenly overly aware of your body inside of it and the way some of its curves might make it look. It was a little tight around the cleavage area too. The floral pattern of itâlittle roses, printed in a rustic styleâhad looked cute when you bought it. It seemed so stupid now.
âOh.â You cleared your throat. âOf course. Thanks.âÂ
You went to fetch the padlock from Frankie and locked the shed closed. The old man offered both of you to come in and wash upâit was significantly cooler inside too, which was nice, despite how cramped the ice cream parlor was. In the end, you ordered your usual, which intrigued Hyunjin so much that he ordered the same thing.Â
You liked Frankieâs frozen yogurt but anybody in their right mind knew that ice cream was obviously superiorâand since you owned this damn camping ground, why should you settle? You had come up with the ultimate order, which was: in a cup, half a frozen yogurt of a fruity flavor of your desire. Tonight, it was strawberry. Then, the other half was vanilla ice creamâand Frankie made his soft-serve with real cream and real vanilla, so it was insanely good. Topped with fresh fruitâin this case, local strawberries and raspberries because Frankie had someâand when you wanted the experience to be as good or better than sex, the cup was sprinkled with just a little bit of salted pistachios.Â
A few minutes later, Hyunjin and you were walking away, back in the direction where you had come from, holding your ice creams in your hands after saying goodbye to Frankie.
âOh my godââ Hyunjin quickly put a second, then a third spoonful of your delicious creation in his already rather full mouth. âTish ish sho foking ghood!âÂ
âI keep telling people that they should not disregard frozen yogurt but should also not settle for it, you know? People think compromises are a bad thing, but they can be so enlightening.âÂ
To be fair, Frankieâs products were excessively tasty, which largely helped. Still, there was something endearing in watching Hyunjin eat his ice cream, complimenting each aspect of it like it was the first time he had eaten it at all.Â
âYouâre a genius. You could be a millionaire if you sold this in tubs,â Hyunjin retorted. His face, illuminated again now that you two were walking in the light spilling from Marleneâs diner, was serious.Â
You shook your head, giggling. âYouâre adorableââ You cut your sentence short, although you didnât even know what else there was to say. This was all getting too familiar. Was it weird that you said that? Maybe. Definitely. Warmth spread at the nape of your neck and you quickly shoved a spoonful of ice cream in your mouth to cool off.
âNo, itâs just, itâs really good,â he insisted, waving the frozen yogurt/ice cream cup at you, walking again, and you followed him.Â
The bench was empty and the two of you returned there, sitting to enjoy your dessert. In silence for the first few minutes. You tried to listen to the conversations that you could hear from the diner but it was too fuzzy to make sense of any of the words, and your heartbeat was too loud in your ears.Â
Your gaze landed on Hyunjinâs backpack. Somewhere in there was the painting he made for you. And there was also the painting he made of you. You wondered if he also painted Dara, today, while on the boat.Â
You wondered what he was telling her the other day when he was on the phone with her.
âWhen I bought the paints and stuff for you,â you started before you could think this over, âI wanted to give them to you. I mean, in person.âÂ
Hyunjin looked up from his precious ice cream, staring into your eyes, but saying nothing.Â
âI went to your RV,â you went on. âMinho was disappointed I didnât make it to breakfast,â you added, recalling that moment. âIâuhâI went to give you the bag. He said you were by the river. But you were on the phone, and it seemed important. I didnât want to bother you, so I left it with him.âÂ
Maybe he knew that this was some sort of invitation to speakâHyunjin nodded slowly, faintly, more for himself than for you, and ate more of his ice cream quietly as the sounds of the night took over the forest.Â
âDo you remember what I told you the other night?â Hyunjin began, looking up at the sky. There werenât too many stars yetâit was too early for that.Â
Not only did you remember, but you had thought about it enough that you figured you had put many pieces of the puzzle in their place. But you werenât going to tell him that. âI remember. It was about Dara?âÂ
Hyunjin took a deep but shaky breath. He forced more ice cream into his mouth. âYes. I was talking to her.âÂ
You didnât pretend to be surprised. âIs she somebody you work with? Do you have to talk to her often?â After all, you had to work with Christopher every day, didnât you? Maybe it would hurt a little less if you didnât.
âI donât work with her, I guess,â Hyunjin explained. âItâs more like⌠our studios are next door.â He sighed. âWe see each other every day. We collaborate on projects all the time. Sheâs my friend.âÂ
You almost dropped your cup of ice cream, managing to steady your grip on it at the last second. You found yourself completely unsettled by Hyunjinâs revelation. You hadnât really expected that. Well, you expected something, sure, since he was talking to her on the phone. But not this. Not like this. Not sheâs my friend in the present tense.
âAnd youâre able to be her friend after what happened between you two?â you asked softly, suddenly concerned for Hyunjinâs well-being, even though you werenât sure what had happened exactly.
âI was her friend before I fell in love with her. Itâs hard to explain.â Hyunjin left his half-eaten dessert on the ground next to the bench, sitting with his knees pressed to his chest.Â
You gave him the space he needed, aware that you had probably pushed a little too hard. It was none of your business anyway, was it? And yet.Â
You had told him so little about Judith and it had opened a whole new dimension for you. A part of you really, really wanted to do the same for Hyunjin. If you could somehow manage such a feat.
âI donât want to insist,â you told him. âBut if you want to talk to someoneâI can be that someone. I want to be. I know itâs difficult to talk.â
âItâs not difficult with you. I like talking with you,â Hyunjin replied. You couldnât see his mouth as it was hidden behind his knees. âI just⌠I donât even know where to start. And itâs not like I havenât told the story before. I have. I went to therapy because of it.â
âDidnât it help?â you questioned, trying to focus on the latter part of his sentence and not the first, so as not to melt into a puddle.
He shrugged. âYes. No. I went for months and talked about Dara plenty, but all that my therapist would focus on was me. He said the reason I wasnât getting over her was because I had other, deeper issues we needed to address. I didnât like that.â
You thought about it for a second and it appeared to you clear as day. âYou didnât like that because he made itâyour sadnessânot about Dara anymore?â
Hyunjin inhaled sharply, apparently surprised by your response. He pressed his mouth onto his thighs, closing his eyes, disappearing behind his hair momentarily. When he spoke again, his voice was muffled, almost strained.
âIt felt like it was all I had left of our love. The pain. The longing. And he wanted to take it away from me by making it about other things. So I stopped going.âÂ
It was instantaneousâyour throat shut tight and your eyes tingled with tears that you fought to hold back. It hurt to hear him say those words. It hurt for him and it hurt for you.Â
Because what else was left of your love story with Chris if not for that? The pain? Were you holding onto that pain because it was all that you had? Even if it was going to kill you?Â
You discarded your ice cream, leaving it in the pebbled soil at your feet, reaching a trembling hand towards Hyunjin. You had no idea what the fuck you were going to do with that hand. You wanted it in his hair, caressing it, tucking a strand of it behind his ear to reveal his deep and soulful gaze. You wanted to cup his cheek and caress his silky skin. Something was calling you to himâsomething inside of you that you did not know how to control.Â
But, gently, you rested your hand on his back. He jumpedâjust a little recoil because he was surprisedâbut leaned into your touch, moving closer to you until your entire arm was around his back. Each inch of your skin that touched him was immediately ignited and hyperaware, awake in the night.Â
âMinho was pissed,â Hyunjin went on, sniffling. You couldnât see whether he was crying or not and maybe it was for the best. It might just break you if you saw tears on his almost too-handsome face. âBecause he was the one who got me to see his psychiatrist. He was worried about me.âÂ
âThatâs because he cares about you though,â you pointed out.Â
âI know. But he doesnât understand,â Hyunjin mumbled, playing with one of his shoelaces, keeping his hand busy. âHe thinks I shouldnât be friends with her anymore. He suggested that I should cut ties with Dara completely during the trip. To see how it feels.âÂ
You would know a thing or two about not letting go.Â
You took a deep breath, unsure of what you should say next. Perhaps it was best not to say anything. Maybeâno, definitelyâthe best, most reasonable option for you right now would be to come up with some comforting words for Hyunjin and call it a night. Tell him to get some rest, that sleep would do him good. Then drive home, and go to bed, too.
But Marlene kept liquor in the walk-in cooler. Away from prying eyesâonly a few privileged individuals knew where it was, and you were among them.
âDo you want a drink?â you heard yourself say, barely audible enough to be heard over the steady sound of the river. âI know a place.â
At this, Hyunjin reappeared from behind his knees, staring at you with damp eyes. âA drink?âÂ
âI owe you one after all, but we donât have to.â
âYou really donât owe me anything.â And yet. Gradually, Hyunjin returned to a more normal sitting position. He wiped the corner of his eye with the back of his hand. âBut I could use a drink. It was a long day.âÂ
A smile sneaked its way onto your lips. It was a gift sent from that thing that you could not control within you, hidden in some secret corner. You gathered the mostly melted ice creams and discarded them in appropriate bins and guided Hyunjin back near the diner, explaining how Marlene liked to keep a good bottle of Hennessy or a fancy scotch around for dire situations.
âA woman of refined taste, this Marlene,â Hyunjin commented. It felt good to see him smiling again. âYou never know when you need to get wasted.â
âIndeed.â It seemed wise to avoid the dining room and the staffâin other words, Chrisâand go through the back door. âItâll just be a minute, okay?â
âTake your time. Iâll text Minho to let him know I havenât been kidnapped.â With that, Hyunjin pulled his phone out of his pocket and walked away, aimlessly, typing on the screen of his device.Â
You used your master key to enter the kitchen directly. From here, the conversation was loud and clear, and you heard Jake, Marlene, and Stacy discuss one of the new hiking trails that had been opened in the state park right next door. Jake was very interested in it and was telling the two women about an upcoming one-day trip to the park with Christopher, Jeongin, Summer, and a few more people. It seemed to you like it had been planned just now, right after you had left.Â
You stood in the dark and quiet kitchen, knowing you did not need to hear any more of this and yet waiting. Maybe you wanted to hear the excitement in Christopherâs voice, but all that you heard was Summer asking Frankieâwho had apparently joined themâif he thought Lucy would want to come too. Maybe Chris had already left for the staff house, where he usually stayed. To keep an eye on things from a little closer, but mostly so he could avoid you more easily. It just gave him a good excuse not to stay in the same house as you too often.
You gathered all of the courage you hadâwhich wasnât all that muchâand made your way to the dining room, standing in the door frame, eyeing the scene before letting anyone see you. He wasnât there. Chris. You cleared your throat softly and it was Stacy who saw you first, and Marlene second, followed by the others. You couldnât read the expression on Summerâs face, but you wished you could. It would make it a lot easier for you.
âSorry to interruptââ you started, stammering through your words a little. âMarlene, I just wanted to know if I could borrow some sugar?â It was the code you had come up with for the liquor she kept.
The corner of Marleneâs lips curved into a lopsided smile. âSure thing, honey. You know where it is. Take as much as you need, but be careful not to overdo it. Youâll get diabetesâÂ
âIâll be careful,â you promised. âCan I grab the fancy one? Iâll get you a replacement.â Jake also knew about the Hennessyâhe suppressed a chuckle by swallowing a generous amount of beer.Â
âMake yourself at home,â Marlene insisted with a wink.Â
You thanked her and did your best to wish everyone a good evening as warmly as you could, but it was always about not overdoing it. It was hard to tell when you did. When Frankie inquired Did your friend like the ice cream? You assured him that he very much did, of course. Thank you so much Frankie, and make sure to call if you need anything.Â
The Hennessy was exactly where it was supposed to beâon the highest shelf in the walk-in cooler, hidden in a small crate that once contained bell peppers. Marlene just put more stuff on top and nobody paid it any mind. You shoved the bottle in a tote bag you found in Marleneâs office. The whole thing took less than two minutes and you exited as quickly as you entered, relieved to put as much distance as you could between you and this place. For some reason.
The sounds of the night had increased in volume againâthere were more frogs now, and among them was the loudest and your favoriteâthe gray treefrog, whose thrill-like breeding call was eerily similar to a birdâs voice. They were hard to spot, and you had seen those frogs just a handful of times in your life, but you enjoyed their musical display, which was also how you could tell that summer had definitely begun.Â
It did not stop you from hearing Hyunjinâs voice. At first, you thought he was still on the phone. But then you heard the bell from the main entrance to the diner, and more voices. Most importantly, Christopherâs.
âAh, boss! There you are,â Jake said. âWe were starting to wonder if you ghosted us or something.â
âSorry for keeping you,â Hyunjin immediately interjected. âI should go anywayââ He didnât finish his sentence. Instead, he let it float somewhere in the air, allowing the frogs and the owls to fill the silence.
âOh no, I shouldnât be keeping you from going back home and resting after your long day! It was nice meeting you.â You could almost hear Chris shake Hyunjinâs hand. âCareful on your way back, yeah? I know some parts of the pedestrian paths arenât great over the RV sites, but weâll get to fixing them in the upcoming weeks.â
Hyunjin coughed nervously. âSure, yeah, yeah, thanks, Christopher. Goodnight!â Two things became simultaneously obvious to you.
That Hyunjin had told Chris he was going home instead of telling him that he was going to hang out and have drinks with you.
And also that Hyunjin was a terrible, terrible liar.Â
The warmth that Hyunjin seemed to constantly elicit in you came back ferociously, spreading from your chest to your belly like an oil tanker spilled into an ocean, making the air in your lungs hot and thick. But sweet, too. There was nothing to hide and Hyunjin could and probably should have told him where he was going, and with whom.Â
You remembered the painting. Not the one he gave youâthe other one. The one that gave you chills, that made you press your thighs together. It was stupid because his heart belonged to another. It was stupid because you were married and because you were broken. You were the kind of broken that wasnât even worth taking to the repair shop. You were the kind of broken that nothing could be done for, or with, or about.Â
You did not like the part of you that was greedyâthat part was urging you to make yourself seen, to make sure that Chris would know you would be with Hyunjin. But what would you even gain? Because even if he felt the same thing you felt when he was with Summer, would it make a difference? You werenât even jealous. Not anymore. You werenât jealous because Summer was prettier and younger than you. It had taken you a while but you had even stopped being jealous of how happy she made Chris. Some days, you really just wanted to beg him to please just fuck her and put an end to your misery already.Â
That would be too ugly of you. Chris didnât need that. Not after what he had gone through.Â
So you stayed put, listening as the main group walked away. At this hour, the camping ground was mostly quiet and emptyâon the first days of the season, especially the sunny ones, people hurriedly did as many outdoor activities as they could, meaning that by this hour most of them were probably sound asleep.Â
Hyunjin quietly reappeared after turning the corner of the building, his backpack on his shoulders and his hair secured in a tighter bun. He seemed ready for an adventure, but he stopped and stood there, facing you, and you stood with your back pressed to the wooden wall behind you, staring into the manâs eyes, which were as beautiful as the night around you. You didnât tell him, you almost said. Â
But you didnât tell him.Â
So that made two of you.
Hyunjin motioned at the tote bag whose handles rested on your shoulder. âYou got the stuff?âÂ
You nodded. âLetâs go.â You wasted no time, regretting your choice of footwear and overall fashion decisions as you made your way towards one of the unpaved paths that circled the camping ground.
Most of these were surrounded by more densely wooded areas or tree lines. Chris wouldnât need it because he knew all the trails by heart, but you used your phone to light up the ground just to make sure neither of you would trip over something. There wasnât much conversation while you walked, except for when Hyunjin cursed under his breath because a mosquito got him. Two seconds later, you heard the zipper of his backpack and then the vigorous spraying of bug repellent, its strong and potent scent reaching you.Â
âIs your blood tasty, Mr. Hyunjin?â you asked, looking over your shoulder, suppressing a smile as Hyunjin was shoving the bug spray back in his bag.Â
âIâm a Michelin-starred restaurant,â he replied, scoffing, visibly displeased. âMinho said he liked having me on the boat because I attract mosquitoes and itâs good for fish. He called me live bait all day.âÂ
Your own laughter took you by surpriseâit spilled into the night as clear as the moonlight, echoing in the silence. You couldnât remember the last time you had actually laughed like this, a true laugh. A laugh that didnât come at a price, that didnât need to be exchanged for something else, tears, excuses, or even shame.
Just a laugh because something was funny.
The silence that followed it was heavy and you realized it was so because you had stopped in your tracks. Hyunjin, who was close behind you, had also stopped. You were just stunned by this new feeling in your chest but Hyunjin seemed to believe there was another, bigger problem.
âEverything alright? Did you see something? Are there bears out here? Wolves?âÂ
âBears?â You turned to him. âWolves?â
He seemed a little nervous. âYeah?âÂ
âOf course there are bears, but nowâs not the worst of the season,â you replied as though it was evident, meaning for it to be reassuring. Only Hyunjin did not seem relieved to hear that at all. âThey only really bother humans when they get ready to hibernate. There are no wolves in Maine though,â you added, certain this would comfort him.
Hyunjinâs uneasiness was visible even in the dark. You bit your lip, savoring the mild pleasure you got from the sight of him, but quickly went to put an end to his fears. âYou can worry about the mosquitoes more than you should worry about bears,â you concluded. âI havenât seen one on these premises in two years.â
That did itâHyunjin gulped thickly but gave you a resolute nod before the two of you resumed your walk. The world fell quiet again, the way nature was silent, which was to say, not at all. Exactly the way you liked it.Â
âWhere are you taking me?â Hyunjin inquired after a few minutes, trying to see through the tree line and recognize your location in the campground.Â
âNot too far from here,â you assured. âThereâs this nice little place by the river andââ Your sentence was cut in the middle when you felt something cool and wet and tiny on your shoulder.Â
Worried once again, Hyunjin squinted, turning his phone light on too. âWhat is it?âÂ
âAh, shitââ you mumbled, locking eyes with him, unsure whether you should laugh or not. Another raindrop fell on your arm, quickly followed by another on your leg as you remembered the weather forecast on the radio earlier, which your brain had conveniently made you forget.Â
A raindrop landed on Hyunjinâs lip and you followed it with your gaze the same way a sinner begs for holy water. More rain fell on your cheeks and you stood as Hyunjin watched it roll on your skin like tears would. A slight frown had appeared on his face, as though he was taking a few seconds to process what he was seeing.Â
Hyunjin, unhurried, handsome, so tangible and so close, raised his hand then, bringing it near your face, gently pressing his index finger onto your cheek to collect a raindrop. His touch lit a wildfire inside of you that no deluge could put out. âItâs raining,â he said, his deep, expressive gaze fixated on the drop he had stolen from you, but not for long because he looked into your eyes then. âItâs okay,â he added with a smile, offering you his hand. âCome with me.âÂ
He was a stranger.Â
But he shared the blood of your favorite painter, the one who created your favorite painting in the whole world. It was your favorite long before you knew it was a prophecy, or perhaps an omen. Maybe you should have known. You should have opened your eyes before instead of being so rational all the time and taking everything at face value.Â
Maybe you should have realized long ago that life has a voice and that it uses it to speak to us. Some call it fate or destiny. Some call it God. You werenât sure what you called it, or what you thought it was. You just knew that it had been there the whole time, like a thread weaving the events of your life together. Everything that had ever happened to you had led you to this.Â
Hyunjin was a stranger.Â
But you knew about the cracks in his heart, and he knew about the void in yours. Somewhere in the distance, thunder rolled in the sky, and you felt it in your chest, no matter how far the storm was.Â
You took Hyunjinâs hand. His skin was smooth and warm, like honey left in the sun for too long. He squeezed your hand a little, leaning in closer to you so he could be heard over the rain, which was gaining in intensity.Â
âWhere are we exactly? If we want to get to the RV? Is it far?â he asked, pulling away to see your reaction.Â
You were shocked by everything that had happened in the last thirty seconds and by Hyunjinâs sweet warm breath that tickled your skin. It took you longer than it should have to give him a response. âNo, not too much,â you managed, your voice higher than usual. âIf we follow this path, the RV site is at the end of the road on the right.âÂ
âAlright, letâs go.â Taking the lead, Hyunjin started again, illuminating the path like he had never feared bears would maul him. One might believe he thought that rain was lethal to you or something, with how determined he was.Â
The more it rained, the faster you walked, and the tighter Hyunjin held onto you. Or maybe it was you who held onto him, you couldnât say. You passed the opening that led to the little spot by the river that you liked, promising yourself to visit it soon. Also trying to focus on anything but what was happening. You had to buy milk, and maybe eggs too. Youâd definitely need fabric softener. Yeah, you would have to go to the grocery store tomorrow. Youâd also go see your father, but there would undoubtedly be a lot of things to do on the campground, as was always the case after a good rainfall.Â
Hyunjin caught you just in time when you slipped in the mudâby then, you were completely soaked. He saved you from a nasty fall. After that, you made sure to look where you were going and to stop thinking about everything and anything.Â
But then that meant the other thoughts didnât stop.
What the fuck am I doing here? What am I doing? Where am I going? Why am I running in the rain with a guy I barely know who's⌠how many years younger than me exactly? Seven, eight years? More? More, I think. What the fuck are people going to say? Is my dress see-through now? Oh god I think so. Fuck. I should have worn the dark one instead. My hair probably looks like shit too. But who cares? Who cares what I look like? Itâs not like heâs taking me back to his RV because heâs trying to get into my pants. And even if he wasâWHICH HE IS NOT BY THE WAY! EVEN IF HE PAINTED ME. HEâS JUST AN ARTISTâIâm married. Iâm married to a man who does not love me anymore but Iâm married anyway. Iâm married to a man who I know doesnât want to be with me anymore but refuses to divorce me out of respect for me and our relationship and maybe out of respect for our daughter too. What the fuck am I doing here? How did I get here?Â
It just kept going until you reached the motorhome shared by Hyunjin and Minho. It was completely dark inside, and while you were in a hurry to get out of the very cold rain, you became self-conscious.
âI donât want to wake him up,â you told Hyunjin as he was searching his pocket for the key.
âDonât worry. If itâs raining, heâs outside sleeping in a tent,â Hyunjin replied with a shrug. His hair had come undone and was completely drenched. âHe likes the sound of the rain.âÂ
He unlocked the door and let you in firstâknowing this RV well after having done a maintenance run on it, you turned on the kitchenette lights on your left, leaving enough space for Hyunjin to come in and close the door behind him while you were getting rid of your mud-soaked sandals.
As soon as the door was closed, the rain became a muffled noise, distant, barely real. Out of breath, you leaned on the counter to catch your airâit had been a long time since you ran for that long, especially in those conditions. You looked to your left to make sure that Hyunjin was fine, but as soon as your eyes met his, the two of you froze.Â
It was eerily quiet here. The RV was hugeâit was meant to accommodate up to four people very comfortably and six if they wanted to squeeze in there a little. Yet he was right there. Hyunjin. He smelled like bug spray and petrichor and mud and strawberries. His hair was pure chaosâwet, messy, all over the placeâbut it took nothing away from his effortless beauty. Your heart skipped a few beats. It was because of all the running and not because his shirt was sticking to him like a second skin, exposing a lean and toned body, hinting at enough muscle to make you avert your gaze and blush.Â
âI forgot it was supposed to rain, but in my defense, they said it would be later into the night,â you said to diffuse whatever weight was falling from your chest to your stomach. It did not workâthe feeling lingered. And descended even lower.
Hyunjin was silent. He had removed his backpack and left it in a safe corner and was staring at anywhere except you. A littleâor veryâself-consciously, you did your best to smooth out your hair.Â
âIâll take this,â Hyunjin said all of a sudden, reaching for the tote bag on your shoulder and handing you a dry towel in exchange. There was one hanging around his neck already. âUhâŚâ He cleared his throat, his eyes dancing once again, struggling to stay fixated on yours. For one second, maybe two, but no more, he looked at you below the neck. âMaybe youâd want a warm shower? And clothes?âÂ
You took the towel from him, blushing violently. It felt as though your brain couldnât even function properly. You, also, struggled to look him in the eyes. Did you absolutely want a shower right now? No. But did you want to be alone for like five minutes?
Yes.Â
âOâOkay, well, Iâll wash up, yâyeah,â you managed, stammering your way through your sentence. âThanks.â You gulped, wrapping your arms around yourself. âI donât think youâll have clothes for me.â He was just so lean. And long.Â
âI wouldnât have offered if I didnât,â Hyunjin retorted as though it was the most obvious thing in the world.
He guided you towards the bathroom and you followed him, eyes to the floor, thanking him again, reminding him you knew how everything worked when he tried to explain the shower functions. The bathroom was tiny but fully equippedâthis RV unit was the campgroundâs last big purchase and its most luxurious. To think that Minho had rented it for the entire seasonâŚÂ
âIâll leave clothes here by the door,â Hyunjin told you. âThe towels are in the cabinet, help yourself. There are a few combs in there too, for your hair.âÂ
You barely gave him an answer as you had just come face to face with the mirror. Your hair was not the problem. The problem wasnât even the dark circles under your eyes from your sleepless nights, or your chapped lips from biting at them too much.Â
The problem was your soaked dress and how it stuck to your skin and how it had turned see-through for the most part and that you could see your black lace bra underneath. You buried your face into your hands, properly humiliated. Rookie move. This was what you got for hanging out with a guy who looked like a young god, no less. Hyunjin was the kind of person who just couldnât have a fashion faux pasâeverything would always look good on him. For instance, his wet T-shirt made him look like he was straight out of an alluring magazine ad for some fancy fragrance.
And here you were with your stupid fucking off-white dress with a black bra underneath because you forgot to do your laundry and it was all that you had. The dress stuck to your curves in a way that made you look like anything but a magazine ad. As you stared into that mirror, you could see nothing of the woman Hyunjin had painted in watercolors. She was a version of you that didnât exist.
You turned on the shower, angrily at first, swallowing back tears and shame and planning the perfect escape. You would tell Hyunjin thank you so, so much for the shower and the dry clothes but you couldnât stay. You had to go right now. Heâd probably want to walk you back and youâd have to be firm and insist and say no. He was just a very, very nice guy. You had no reason to be associated with him whatsoever. He probably just pitied you because of what you told him that other night, about Judith.Â
Yes. That was it.Â
So you toweled yourself dry and found a dry pair of gray sweatshorts by the door, along with a loose tank top and a zip-up hoodie. Hyunjin had even provided you with a bag for any clothing items you wished to discard.
Iâm really sorry, I had a phone call and I have to go, you rehearsed in your head as you were getting dressed. To your surprise, the sweatshorts fit comfortably. Thank you so much for everything, Iâll make sure to get the clothes back to you tomorrow. Oh no, no itâs perfectly fine, you stay right here. I insist. Iâ
Your mind went blank the moment you put on the tank top. The fabric was soft, the shirt was nice and high-quality. But most importantly, it smelled like Hyunjin. Like roses dipped in golden sunsets. Like spice-infused oud. Like smoke, like amber. It made you freeze in place, inhaling a lot more air than you needed, or should. It was a little tighter in certain places but it felt more like a hug than anything else.
Hyunjinâs voice brought you back to reality like tripping over a goddamn canyon. âIs everything alright?â
You cleared your throat. âYes, yes, itâs all goodâthank you, Iâm fine, Iââ One glance at the mirror confirmed that you probably should have put on your very wet bra underneath the tank top but instead you chose to wrap yourself in the hoodie, which was even softer than the shirt and smelled even more like Hyunjin, almost as though he had worn it at least once without washing it.Â
I need to get out of here. Fuck.Â
You pulled the door open and your plans completely fell through.Â
Hyunjin was busy getting the back room ready. It was normally the master bedroom but you could tell from his and Minhoâs setup that they used it as some sort of living room and instead slept in the bunk beds. He was placing pillows onto it and the bottle of Hennessy was on the shelf behind the bed/couch, with two glasses nearby, waiting for you.Â
âThere you are,â he said with a smile when he caught sight of you. âAre you comfortable with the clothes? I have more. We can hang your dress to dry in the kitchen if you want but I donât think itâll dry anytime soonâŚâÂ
âItâs all very comfortable.â Nothing about the way Hyunjin spoke to you made you feel self-conscious about yourself and the way you looked. He really just wanted to make sure the clothes were comfy. His question had nothing to do with the size of the clothes. âDonât worry about the dress, Iâll wash it at home.âÂ
âIâll shower too, but I insist that you make yourself at home. Fridge, food, anything,â he told you for the second time. âThere are books by my bed if you want, and the TV remote is here.â He handed it to you. âIâll be right back.â
Not two minutes ago, you were planning your escape. And now you found yourself sitting on this makeshift couch with a TV remote in your hand, facing a black screen because you hadnât turned it on, listening to the sounds of the running shower coming from the tiny bathroom a few feet away. Hyunjin had cracked open a window by the couch and you also heard the thunder, realizing that it was noticeably closer than it had been before. You listened to the rain as it fell onto what you were certain was Minhoâs tent.Â
For an instant, just a few seconds, you were transported back to your childhood. To that one summer night Chris tried to get you to go camping with him in his backyard and you wanted nothing to do with that. Itâll rain! Itâll be so cool, come on! And of course you went. And of course you stayed for about ten minutes before both Chris and you decided it was best to sleep indoors because the wind was scary.Â
You sighedâbut first, you took a deep breath, inhaling more of Hyunjinâs scent, and it seemed to evaporate most of your brain functions. Except for the one that was responsible for making you notice that the stitching of the crotch on the sweatshorts was pressing at certain places. In certain ways. In certain pleasant ways.Â
Iâm so sorry Hyunjin, but while you were showering, I had a phone call and Iâm gonna have to go. But thank you so much and thank you so much for the painting too. Itâs just that itâs my father and I donât want to leave him alone. Over the years, you had become such a good liar. So good that, often, you yourself couldnât even tell whether you were telling the truth or not. So this wouldnât be a problem. You just needed toâ
It seemed you had remained lost in your thoughts for longer than you believed because Hyunjin reappeared, sporting shorts and a long-sleeved gray tee. He was squeezing his hair dry with the towel, but little drops of water had stained the shirt around the collar. There was something incredibly soft about him at that momentâmaybe it was just the warm lighting or the dewy aspect of his post-shower skin.Â
In any case.
You didnât go anywhere.
âThereâs a phone charger to your left,â he said, motioning towards the cord in question. âIâUhâI mean, I suppose⌠people would be looking for you and wondering if youâre okay.âÂ
You blinked, staring at him like you had never seen him before. Everything just felt so differentâonly yesterday, that statement would have elicited a deep sadness from you, no doubt. It was still there, you could feel it. Itâs not like it had disappeared overnight. But there were so many other things alongside it that it was drowning.
You scoffed, shaking your head, still connecting your phone to the cord. âNobody is looking for me, Hyunjin. Itâs fine.âÂ
He stood near the not-couch, visibly uncomfortable. You could almost feel his eyes drilling a hole into your ring finger. You werenât stupid. You knew exactly whatâor rather, whoâthis conversation was about.Â
âHeâs not going to wander the campground and desperately search for me all night if thatâs what youâre wondering,â you murmured. âThis isnât the kind of relationship we have anymore.â Fully sober? I dropped that lore fully sober? Really? âHey, letâs have drinks, yeah?âÂ
âI bet he will want to know where you are,â Hyunjin insisted, dimming the lights before making his way to the liquor and unscrewing the bottle open. âThatâs just why I wanted you to know you could charge your phone. Here.â He handed you a glass that was a little too full of liquor but you gladly took it from him.Â
You could have told my husband where I was going and yet you did not. But the thoughts remained on your tongue and you swallowed them like a bitter pill, chasing them with the cognac.Â
âDonât try to deflect,â you said, squinting, waving an accusing finger at Hyunjin as he was sitting down next to you. âWe agreed to pause our earlier conversation and continue it with drinks someplace else. The conversation was about you,â you added. âSo letâs resume.â
Hyunjinâs response was instantaneousâsave for the exaggerated scoff he let out before. âSorry, but Iâll remind you that the only thing I agreed to was drinks!âÂ
You turned to him, falsely offended, eyebrows raised, and exactly one second passed before the two of you burst out laughing. You had to press a hand over your lips to muffle the sound and make sure not to wake Minho who, after all, was sleeping right next to the window.Â
The laughter died out, blending with the thunder. You drank more, letting the liquor smooth out the parts of you that were too sharp. It warmed up your throat nicely. It made you wonder how it would feel to be kissed passionately. With purpose, with lust. You had forgotten those feelings, but drinking the fancy cognac reminded you of tasting yourself on lips that uttered your name fondly.
Hyunjin cleared his throat, coughing faintly after emptying his glass a little too quickly. âSeriously though. Thereâs nothing to say.âÂ
âI doubt that.â You hesitated, staring at the bottom of your glass, swirling the rest of the cognac in it. âYou know, when I went to give you the paints and stuff? I heard that you were on the phone. I get now that it was with her, and you sounded⌠agitated. Upset.â You finished your cognac for good measure, keeping the empty glass in your hand just to have something to hold onto while Hyunjinâs gaze was on the black TV screen in front of him. âI donât know the situation and I donât want to say that Minhoâs right, but if itâs a recurring thing. That your friendship with Dara makes you sad and upset. Maybe keeping a little distance between you two wouldnât be a bad thing.âÂ
The silence was deafening, louder than the thunder outside. You regretted your words instantly, wondering if they had been spoken out of greed. Greed, after all, often comes disguised as something noble, like concern. Maybe you just wanted less of Hyunjinâs attention on Dara. Maybe you were the most selfish person you knew, and everything you had ever done had been calculated to benefit from it in some way.Â
You knew it couldnât possibly be true. You knew reality was more nuanced than this. And yet, the whispers in your head were relentless. It was that same greed that had launched the chain of events causing the death of your daughter, so maybe you should have learned your lesson by now.Â
âI only meantââ you started, but Hyunjin shook his head, raising his hand.
âI know what you meant,â he cut you off. âThe reason I was upset is stupid. And inconsiderate. Selfish. Itâs not her fault.â
âI know a thing or two about selfishness.â You made yourself a little more comfortable with your back leaning on the wall near the window so that you would face Hyunjin. He was half lying on the makeshift couch, propped on several pillows. âI donât think youâre inconsiderate. Youâre the opposite of inconsiderate.âÂ
âSomething really cool happened to her. I should have been happy for her, right? Well, I was. I am happy for her. But my first reaction was to be offended that she told me nothing about the project before. Itâs not the first time she does something without me. Obviously. I donât expect her to do everything with me or to tell me all about every single one of her projects. But this⌠it feels different.â
He grabbed the cognac and poured himself more, glancing at your glass inquisitively. You handed it to him so he could refill it. It had been a while since you had more than just a beer or a glass of wine to drinkâyouâd need to stop after this one.
âShe submitted a few paintings to an art gallery. They gave her a few spots to expose,â Hyunjin explained. âWhich is so cool. And Iâm so happy for her.â He took two sips of liquor. âShe never told me about any of this. I was still in Seoul when she had the idea behind the series of paintings. I was still in the studio next to hers when she painted them. I was still right there when she submitted them. But I learned about it when I saw a reel about it in her Stories.âÂ
His voice was muted. His voice was more like the ghost of a voiceâthere was something terribly heartbreaking to it. It made you want to hold him in your arms. Because you understood. You knew what it felt like to lose that closeness with somebody that was once your everything. You start to realize youâve made a mistakeâyou start to realize you put too much of your own heart into theirs. You also realize it was inevitable, but that you canât get those parts of your soul back.Â
âIâd say youâre entitled to being upset,â you murmured, tilting your head to the side. It caused a dizzy spell for which the cognac was definitely to blame, so you closed your eyes for a few seconds. It gave you some time to think things over. It also gave you some time to realize that you were feeling the effects of the liquor in you. âDid you guys fight?â
âNo, not really. I didnât want her to know I was upset. But these situations have been happening more and more between us. Itâs difficult.â He stared through the tinted window behind you, maybe looking at the lightning strikes in the distance. âWhen I have ideas like these. I just tell her. You know? I like telling her about my stuff. And when she tells me about hers.âÂ
For an instant, you imagined that you were Hyunjin and that Dara was Christopherâit all became obvious then. Clear as day. You may not know their story entirely and it may be different from yours, but at the end of the day, it was all the same. It was always the same. In most relationships, at a given time, there would be someone who loved the other more. It was like an old balance scale trying to find equilibrium except it never did. It never really would. It wasnât supposed to. Love wasnât supposed to be equal anyway.
But for Hyunjin, that love was getting tiresome. Because he kept holding the weight of it while simultaneously adding more load onto it to make it substantial. To make it something. You had done that for a while too, with Chris. It was like adding logs into a fireplace while letting the flames lick you and burn you, over and over. Trying so hard just so he would still love you. Just so he would love you again. All that love going nowhere. Lost, forever.Â
Except Hyunjin was also a lot like Christopher, and so you understood Daraâs perspective, or at least you thought you did. Chris, wherever he went, was loved. He was noticed. Remembered. He was somebody.Â
You were not.
âHyunjin,â you started carefully, hoping you wouldnât offend him. âMaybe she just needs to do something on her own. To prove to herself that she can do it. You know?â
âShe knows she can. Sheâs a better painter than I am, she doesnât even deny it,â Hyunjin insisted. âI feel so weird inside. I think itâs working. What sheâs doing.â
âWhat is she doing?â you asked, putting your empty glass on the shelf, deciding it would remain empty because your skin was warm and your thoughts fuzzy.Â
âSheâs keeping me away. Emotionally I mean,â Hyunjin explained. He finished his drink and put his glass next to yours before laying down again, on his back this time.Â
He stretched a little, exposing a sliver of skin between his shorts and his shirt and shivers went down your spine. You decided to keep your eyes closed but it was too lateâyou couldnât unsee what you had seen. And you were under the influence enough to wonder what it would feel like to kiss Hyunjin there. Or maybe just brush your fingers on his skin, feeling his toned body under your touch. Or under you.
âItâs kind of a vicious circle,â he went on, completely oblivious to the commotion he had caused within you. âWhat happened between Dara and me affected me deeply. I never told her it was what made me so distressed, but I wonder if she knew, maybe. I sought comfort from her anyway. I felt alone. I still do. Even when Iâm surrounded by crowds I feel so alone, so empty. Then I realized that I needed the comfort to come from her, or else it didnât soothe me. Then I realized she wouldnât give it to me anymore.âÂ
âMaybe she doesnât give it because she knows youâre hiding feelings from her?â you suggested, but every new revelation by Hyunjin just hurt more and more. You swallowed back your tears, remembering those entire days when Chris used to ignore youâfor his own sakeâmaking you miserable in the process, only for you to need him to kiss you goodnight and hold you as you fell asleep.Â
âI donât think Iâm hiding anything. I donât think I can hide anything. Iâm not very good at lying.âÂ
You couldnât help letting out a faint laugh, no matter how out of place it was. You controlled it as best you could, biting into your lower lip and focusing on the conversation, but Hyunjin raised his head, staring at you with curiosity. âDid I say something funny?âÂ
It had been a very long time since you had consumed this much hard liquor, especially in such a short amount of time. âNo, noâsorry, I just,â you stammered. âItâsâitâs true. Youâre not a very good liar. I heard you speak to Chris earlier and⌠yeah. Sorry.âÂ
Hyunjinâs head returned to the pillows at the speed of light. He didnât pretend not to understand what you were referring to. âI know itâs going to sound crazy, but I felt like he was questioning me. He asked me where I had spent the day, so I said fishing. He asked if I had painted anything. And where I was headed for the night. And I froze. Itâs dumb.â
You put your hand in the narrow crack of the window just to feel the wind and the rain on your fingers for a few seconds. âLike I said. Youâre not a very good liar.âÂ
Hyunjin clicked his tongue softly but it was not with annoyance. He took a deep breath, facing you again. âWell, what did you tell him?â
âNothing at all.â The difference between Hyunjin and you was that you, on the other hand, were an excellent liar. You were just tired of pretending, and the facade collapsed once in a while. âIt wouldnât make a difference. I told youâwe donât have that kind of relationship anymore.â
âIt might be a language barrier but I donât know what you mean by that.â Hyunjin was only being polite because his English was excellent.
Nobody in the entire world knew the state of your marriage. You thought your father had his doubtsâyour in-laws probably did as well. Same with some of the Riverside employees and your friends in common. But your acting was convincing enough, you thought, that it told a solid story.Â
Nobody expected a couple to remain the same amount of strong after what you two went through anyway, or just through the passage of time. So it just made sense. The honeymoon phase was over, so it was totally, completely, one hundred percent normal that Christopher spent most of his nights at the campground staff house and most of his days with a woman who was by far more fun and livelier and prettier than you. A woman who was still whole.Â
A heavy fatigue took over you. It was sudden but not surprisingâyou found yourself lying down on the makeshift couch, letting the faint breeze cool you down. âYouâre changing the subject again,â you mumbled.
âAnd youâre dodging.âÂ
âWhat do you want me to say?â No one knew. You werenât sure that anybody was supposed to know, no matter how tempting it was to spill your sorrows.
There was a short silence followed by the sound of brushing fabricâyou felt Hyunjinâs weight next to you as he moved and jumped a little when you opened your eyes to find him a lot closer than he had been seconds before.Â
He gulped thickly. âI know what they say about couples who lose aââ Something made him stop there. Something that wasnât greed. You just felt it in your bones that it wasnât.
Your heart tightened in your chest. Like every time it was mentioned, you relived it in a few seconds. All of it. From the pregnancy test to the moment they put Judithâs dead body in your arms because they thought you should hold her anyway. For grief purposes. And everything after. And everything before, too.
âA baby,â you said for him, and it surprised you that you said it. âWe lost a baby. Stillbirth. I knew something was wrong before we made it to the hospital but I was hoping it could be fixed somehow. That they would save her. I didnât even want them to save me if it came to that.â You rolled on your side to face Hyunjin. âIt still doesnât quite feel real, sometimes.âÂ
The rain was still pattering on the tent outside the motorhome and on the tree leaves. On the roof. All over the night. That sound used to comfort you. Other things used to comfort you. But your mother was dead, and everything else reminded you of what you had lost.Â
Except for the man lying on the bed next to you. Because it was a bed. Even though they sort of used it as a couch, it was still a mattress. A bed. You hadnât even been in the same bed as Chris in months. Maybe it was because he was a new element in your life but Hyunjin wasnât a grim reminder.Â
He brought no somber recollections. His eyes were soft. And kind. He stared at you with them like you meant something to him even though that sounded impossible. His gaze was hazy with cognac and an entire day spent in the sun and sometimes it lingered over you in places that made your heart flutter.Â
Maybe you felt safe with Hyunjin because he was broken, too. It didnât need to be any more complicated than that.Â
âIâm so sorry,â he whispered, resting his hand between your faces. âI donât think you ever get over that.â
âYou donât.â There was no point in denying it. âAnd itâs all my fault. I killed her.â You must have been drunker than you thought because you never thought youâd say those words out loud.Â
Seeing that Hyunjin was staring at you with a confused expression on his face, you went on. Your voice was weak, hushed. He came closer to hear you better, his scent entering your lungs and colonizing you.
No more dodging.
âI had an abortion when I was seventeen. I let a boy touch me for the wrong reasons,â you explained, your voice shaking with cries, tears threatening to spill from your eyes. âIt never felt right to have the abortion but I was too scared to keep it. And then, later, when I was marriedâŚâ You closed your eyes, a trembling breath escaping your lips. âChristopher was ready to have a baby right now but I wasnât sure. I wanted to want it. And wanting to want something isnât the same as just wanting it. It isnât genuine desire. It jinxed it. I cursed it. Chris resents me, and he resents himself for resenting me. It was so hard on him. Thatâs why we donât spend nights together anymore.â
Hyunjin inhaled sharply, ready to interrupt you, but you didnât let him.
âI loved her immediately. Judith. When I found out I was pregnant, no matter how terrified I was and how unsure I had been seconds before. I canât even explain it. It was the happiest I ever felt. I loved my body so much because it had a baby inside it. I loved Chris so much because he gave me a baby. I loved my parents for giving me life. I loved everything. And herâI loved this little thing inside of me unconditionally from the moment I knew it was there. Words canât even describe it.â
âItâs not your fault. You talk like you were punished by higher forces for hesitating to have a baby. Fuckâbe honest with me right now. Do you actually, literally believe that this all happened to you because you had an abortion when you were seventeen? Seventeen?â
You hid your face in a pillow. Or perhaps it was just to muffle the sound of your cries. Nobody else knew. You had told no one.Â
âLetâs think for one instant that, somehow, what we feel does influence the things that happen to us,â Hyunjin offered. âLook at me, please.â When you didnât move, he repeated it in an even softer voice. âPlease. Look at me.âÂ
You flinched when he touched you but it was not out of fear or aversion, it was just that you werenât used to tenderness. And there was a lot of it in the way he tucked a strand of your damp hair behind your ear before he gently nudged your head. âPlease,â he said again.Â
You wiped your face before you faced him. But you faced him. No one else knew. About Chris. About Judith. About the crazy thoughts in your head, which weighed so heavy on your heart.
You were here tonight. With him, this man that you barely knew and who barely knew you. Who knew you better than anybody else. And it was out of greed that you were. Out of despair.
âEven if it were the case,â he went on, his voice so full of compassion it stopped your tears on the spot. âIâm sure that your other, brighter feelings and thoughts outweighed the bad ones and would have prevented that tragedy.âÂ
Your response was instantaneous. âYou donât know that.â
âI know you enough to know youâre not a bad person. What happened isnât on you. Iâm sure you would be a great mom. And if you were my wife, I sure as fuck would give a damn where you spend the night.â
The conflicted feelings within you were starting to pile up dangerously, but whatever that last sentence had unleashed caused the wildest reactionâit made the tears reappear. It made your heart stop in your chest, and then it started again only it was way too fast this time. Uncontrollable, unsteady. You might just be having a heart attack. A wave of warmth was spilling onto you like a high tide, starting from the nape of your neck and reaching all the way to your fingertips, your belly, the small of your back, and your thighs. Between your thighs. You had no way to know for sure but you thoughtâand it was patheticâthat you were wet.Â
It was hard to pinpoint what had done it. If it was just the proximity with Hyunjin or his alluring scent, or the few seconds where you caught a glimpse of his toned stomach earlier. Or when he hinted at your abilities at motherhood just now and uttered the words my wife while talking about you. It had been too long since anybody had given the semblance of a fuck about you.Â
You closed your eyes again. To calm down.
The silence that followed was lengthy and not a true silence anyway. The rain was still falling and the storm was getting closer. Just like your father taught you, you counted the seconds between the lightning flashes and the thunder that ensued, dividing the result by 5 to get an approximation of the distance of the storm. It was near but it would probably not pass right over Riverside. It was difficult to concentrate on the numbers anyway because you kept being distracted by Hyunjinâs breathing. It was deep and soothing and comforting the way the wind was comforting when you were in the safety of a warm, secure home.
âDo you still love him? Christopher?â he asked out of nowhere. The storm was about two miles away to the East.Â
âI grew up with him. Here, in Stormhaven, at Riverside. Heâs my best friend.â You thought that was obvious enough, but just in case, you added, âIâll always love him. Like youâll always love Dara.â
âItâs not the same thing.âÂ
âItâs not the same thing but it is,â you retorted. âDifferent friendship, different situation, same result. Am I wrong?âÂ
He didnât give you an answer but you heard him shake his head negatively. âWell, does he love you?â
âDoes Dara love you?â
âWeâre not talking about me.âÂ
âWe were very much talking about you, by the way.â The storm was one mile away. âItâs the same for him. He grew up with me. Heâll always love me somehow. But heâs miserable with me. He wants to fuck Summer.â
âSummer?â Then, immediately. âAh, that girl, I bet.â
âThe one he was sitting with at the diner, yes,â you explained. âI donât blame him. Sheâs a great person. Like, honestly. They make a great pair. And have you seen her? Sheâs hot as hell.â
âThe one who was wearing his hoodie the other night. I remember,â Hyunjin said in a dry, irritated tone.Â
You chuckled, managing to open your eyes despite your head spinning a little more than youâd want it to. âWhy are you mad?â
Hyunjin stared at you blankly. âIâm not mad.â
âYouâre the worst liar Iâve ever seen. Why are you mad?â
He rolled his eyes, tsking you. âWhy was she wearing his hoodie? And why was he sitting with her tonight and not with you?â
âIâm literally wearing your clothes right now. And sitting with you. Horizontally. On a bed.â
âItâs a couch,â Hyunjin pointed out, motioning at the TV. âDoesnât he realize that heâs holding you back? If he loved youâtruly loved you, like a best friend wouldâhe would let you go. A woman like you should be happy.âÂ
The storm was here. Not here here as in it did not hover the sky directly above you but it was too close for you to count the seconds between the flashes and the thunder, which vibrated within the walls of the motorhome.Â
âThis is a two-way thing.â You were so tired that you werenât exactly sure any of this was happening. Maybe you were asleep. Maybe you had gone home directly after dinner and this was all a dream. Some fucked up dream. âIâm not letting him go either.â
âWhy not?â Hyunjin touched you again. Your wrist this time, then your hand, squeezing it. You pressed your thighs together as blood rushed between your legs again. Stupid. Ridiculous. It was time you brought back your faithful vibrator from its retirementâthis was nothing more than a physical reaction to a lack of something. âIâm not telling you to dump him,â he added. âBut either you guys need to make it work or just let it go. Youâre hurting yourselves. Are you sure he hasnât fucked her already? That girl?âÂ
âIâm sure. He would never.â He might have done what you were doing right now though. He might have spent a night with her. On a couch. Just in her presence. If it were the case, you hoped it had made him very happy. âI donât know how to let go. I never did that before. Youâd be upset if someone told you to let go of Dara, wouldnât you?âÂ
âYes. Itâs not the same thing. Weâre not married. She doesnât want to love me. Do you think that Christopher wants to love you?â
There it was.
It all came down to that one question, didnât it? All of it. All this time you knew what you were supposed to do but you didnât do it because it scared you. Because you didnât know what would happen to Riverside Campground. Because you didnât know what you would do without itâbecause of course youâd let Chris have it in the divorce.Â
You didnât know who you were without him by your side. He had been there the whole time. Hunting frogs as children. Sneaking out as teens and smoking weed and pretending not to like each other. Adults doing their best.Â
Hereâs a truth so ugly no one ever wants to admit it to be realâyou can do your best your whole life and it doesnât mean itâll work out. You can try your hardest and it doesnât mean anything will come of it. You can love someone with your whole entire soul and it doesnât mean youâll be with them in the end.Â
And itâs just like that.
Your silence, perhaps, was the loudest response you could have given. Hyunjin squeezed your hand a little tighter before he let go of it but it was only so he could grab a lightweight but soft blanket. âGet some sleep,â he whispered as he lay the blanket over you.Â
Stay, you almost told him. But it felt like a dream. You thought you were dreaming because nothing felt the same as it used to. When you were searching for those anchor points within you, you knew they were there. The sorrow, the grief. But you couldnât see them, the way you couldnât see peopleâs faces or the corners of a room sometimes in a dream.
But you could say it nowâthe reason why you didnât want to let go. You were afraid to let go of it because grief, truly, was all you had left of Judith. You didnât have any memories with her except for the few months she was in your belly. She kicked at you from within. Youâd sing her lullabies. She had the hiccups sometimes, usually in the middle of the night. This, your grief, and the silence in the delivery room when they pulled her out of you, was all you had of Judith.Â
In your dream, Hyunjin said, Iâm here. The rain was tapping steadily on the roof still and it lulled you into a deeper sleep, a barren, quiet one, the kind of sleep where the world stopped existing for an instant.Â
You only woke once during the night, barely.Â
The storm had faded, cooling the airâyou felt the breeze from the window on your face and expected to feel cold, only you didnât. You realized that there were two additional blankets over you.Â
You opened your eyes. Barely.Â
It was dark but you saw him anyway, Hyunjin, asleep on the other side of the bed. You remembered the common loons. You remembered the place where the river came to a rest, slowing down just for a moment, only to gain momentum again. And depth. And strength. Maybe the strength was never really gone even if you didnât see it. It was just dormant.
Aloneness had been forced upon you long ago but maybe, just maybe, you didnât need to drown in it.
You fell asleep again, and your sleep was dreamless and peaceful.Â
... to be continued.
⏠âď¸ Hello everyone! It's been a while, hasn't it?
I hope everyone has been doing okay đ¤
I didn't think this chapter would ever see the light of day. Actually, there was a long moment during which I thought I might or probably would never write again. It's very frightening when you realize that your own melancholy has drowned the fire inside youâbut I suppose there was a spark somewhere. I did what I could with the chapterâif maybe you felt like it was different, or lackluster, I am sorry. Keep in mind that it is a battlefield, and it's quite bloody. I fought to keep writing. I want to keep writing. Writing is all that I have and all that I am.
Thank you to those who have waited for me. Thank you to those who wait for the other stories too. I'm so sorry I'm like that. I wish I were like the other writers and would post often. You guys are the best readers and I want to give you more. Thank you so much for being with me. Some of you have been there for yearsâthis is special to me. I'm grateful, so grateful. No matter what happens to me or the fire inside me, please know that I'll never forget you, and your kindness, and your love.
Thank you so much, and thank you for keeping me around. Now, you guys better take care of yourselves, and eat your meals okay? All three of them!
PS: I will be answering the asks in my inbox today & tomorrow đ¤ sorry for the delay.
Permanent taglist:
@abiaswreck ; @accalus ; @aimeexx ; @alisonyus ; @anylady-fics ;
@b4kuho3 ;Â @binstitsweat ; @byeobie ; @cb97percent ; @chans1aptop ;
@chartrucewhore ;Â @compersian ; @cybergracie ; @flowersun ; @hanjingin ;
@hyuneyeon ;@hyunfruits ; @hyvneluv ; @hyunnie4ever ; @hyunjinswifeee ;
@hyuwunjinie ; @hynjinnnnlvr ; @hyyuniverse ; @iam2out ; @imseungminsgf ;
@karlachsleftbicep ; @leedunno ; @lotus-dly ; @love-stays ; @m00n-dream ;
@miraworldsstuff ; @mmoonriseflowerr ; @naoristerling ; @neosracha ; @rubyshoedpixie ;
@palindrome969 ; @selinia86 ; @shywolfcherryblossom ; @skzfelixlove ;Â @straydhampir ;
@suhomylife ; @sunlitwilderness ; @ven-fic-recs ; @yourmercibeaucoupsblog
âžââşâ pairing: OT8 x fem!reader Ëâŕżŕť đđđđđđđđ: Lee Minho plans a little getaway with his closest friends, their wives, and you, his girlfriend and most adored and prized possession, right after he intentionally reads your private diary and leaves him wandering with your writing about something particular.
đđ ŕŁŞË đđđđđ â đđđđđđđđ: MDNI 18+, smut, cuckolding, mention of age gap, cheating, est. relationship, pet names, edging, overstimulation, multiple orgasms, orgasm denial, daddy, dreg, corruption & praise kink, impact play, handjob, oral sex, fingering, clitplay, boob play, slight roleplay, gangbang, double penetration, bukkake, unprotected sex, creampies, cumplay, & more !! Ě Ě ęˇęŚ Ě Ě ęˇęŚ word count: ~15k
ĘâşË đ´đ˘đŤđąđŹđđ˘đŻ Ë â Ë・âŕ¨ŕ§Ë (đ¸đśđťđ¸đđźđŻđ˛đż 'đŽđ°) âËđŻď¸âąâ§âË. 00: THE INTRO
main masterlist ; taglist â.á
a/n: happy and spooky october! my very first kinktober event! (and ot8 lmk what u think:3) i tried to put a tiny plot lol
âI decided to take a couple of days off, well, starting with this weekend at leastâ expressed your boyfriend calmly, turning the page of his book, disinterested.
You sat up, turning your body to see him and slightly loosening the grip of his arm over your shoulder as you lifted your head from his chest and watched him happily and confused.
âWhy is thatâŚ?â you asked him with a smile on your face.
Your eyes sparkled and Minho, your boyfriend, saw them directly, causing him tenderness, you knew there was something about him, you noticed something different from the first instant since you knew him so well, it was the first thing you noticed in the morning, but for some reason, you didnât ask him and now you felt like you were about to know the reason.
âI just⌠want to relax, I havenât done that in a while, even before my birthdayâ he expressed, with his typical tone that you knew so perfectly, that there was something more in-depth in his short and simple answer.
Also, he wasnât the kind of guy who brings up the topic of his birthday and doesnât seem fazed by surprises.
You squinted your eyes for a moment and watched him, every faction of his perfect, chiseled face, watching him closely and you knew what a lousy liar he was, Minho wasnât making eye contact with you all of a sudden and was about to burst out in nervous laughter.
âItâs okay loveâ you finally replied, genuinely happy for his decision, âyou know how happy it makes me that you take these breaks and be with me, itâs to be with me, right?â
He smiled warmly at you, tenderly showing his front teeth and hugging you again as he finally closed his book. You melted at his expression and countenance, you really loved every part of him. You were both there, on a quiet Sunday on the couch reading placidly, Minho sitting and you lying on his chest, enjoying each otherâs warmth and company. But in a way, he was a little unsettled and you hadnât noticed that yet since he was acting so natural and calm.
âOf course I do, honey, I adore being with you⌠Iâve planned to go to the cabin, shall we?â
You nodded happily, pulling your face closer to him.
âI love the ideaâŚâ
And before you could kiss him, he spoke again saying:
âAnd have the boys come with meâŚâ
Minho blinked suddenly waiting for your answer, but you pulled away from him a little and quickly thought thatâs what all the mystery surrounding him during the day was about.
âOh, youâll go only with tâŚâ
âNo love, I want us to go, them and I thought Iâd invite their wives.â
You didnât know what to say for a moment, you just stared at him for a few seconds and you could think that it was his cabin anyway, his own property and he could decide what to do with it at his own will, so you just smiled, deep down a little disappointed because you had already got the idea into your head to spend a weekend alone in the relaxing forest with your boyfriend, an activity he really loved; but you respected him a lot, absurdly a great amount that you used to be so modest with him to what led you to be submissive to him, something you have discussed previously, in that you may have different opinions and you were more than free to express everything with him, yet you didnât know exactly why you couldnât accomplish it. You loved the cabin, it was so spacious, it was literally a big house, the landscapes were beautiful and Minho had it very well kept as it was like his own sanctuary. There was this idea that if he didnât have to be a civilian and functioning adult with a job in the city, he would live in the quiet of the forest without thinking about it, but it was a few hours outside the city and its access was not so easy. He always offered you his cabin as a way of escape for inspiration in your new work, but he was busy all the time and couldnât stay with you there, causing you fear and uncertainty to be alone in the forest so you just politely declined every time.
âItâs okay, Minho, it will be funâ you replied kindly, giving him a quick kiss anyway.
You felt the softness of his lips for a brief moment, thinking about that homely, adventurous, and manly side you loved about him, he adored his typical âman activitiesâ, being outdoors, camping, fishing, building things, giving you instructions when you didnât know how to do something he knew almost automatically like fixing a car, putting together a piece of furniture and all those little things he took care of, sighing softly, every now and then letting out an aghh in a whine and looking at you with his big eyes in a falsely disapproving joking way to continue to help you anyway with all his willingness and affection, all those small and simple actions in huge contrast to how you met him, so formal, academic and modestly. You loved him so much and he loved you too.
âI knew youâd like the idea, princess. Do you want me to buy you a new wardrobe to go into the woods this time? Itâll be cold and the last time we went it was summerâŚâ
Your cheeks turned warm quickly, something about him spoiling you too much, buying you and giving you everything, absolutely without whining and you without even having to lift a finger, still caused you some shame, you wanted to earn it, you had been unemployed for months now after graduating, but Minho was supporting you and he used to tell you that you shouldnât think like that, you did work hard, in writing your new book⌠but simply, you didnât manage to finish it. He has given you everything and so many opportunities that even the slightest thing shocked you, despite your already long-standing relationship.
âIâll see what I can buy myselfâŚâ you wanted to emphasize the words buy myself, implying that you would use the money they used to pay you from time to time when you sent the manuscript of some chapters.
âBuy all you want, use my card, dearâ he sentenced with a smile, âDo you want more coffee?â
You didnât even reason his question and nodded somewhat stunned, the next thing you saw was your boyfriend get up from the couch to grab your cups on the nightstand before you and walk to the kitchen. You followed him with your eyes, you wanted to be so grateful to him in such a way that he could feel it and touch it, he kept telling you that he knew you were grateful and that your final art will be a delicious reward for him, but sometimes you felt the need to do something for him⌠but you couldnât think of something concrete, not like the things he did for you. You also thought, as you leaned your body back against the couch, how much he loved the cabin, and his 7 closest friends, so when he mentioned âthe boysâ you knew exactly who Minho meant. You met them over time in your relationship, at reunions and birthdays, you got to be at the birthday party of Seo Changbin, Han Jisung, Lee Felix, Kim Seungmin, Bahng Chan, and the upcoming was Minhoâs, you met the rest of his close group, Yang Jeongin and Hwang Hyunjin. Only four of them were married, Chan, Changbin, Seungmin and Hyunjin, and of those four, all except Chagbin already had children, about the others, you really did not know their love situation. But you also knew their respective wives and to be honest... They seemed to you, like women with eccentric but empty personalities, and it was not as if you took the time to know perfectly well Minhoâs best friends, you only knew their occupations and their approximate age, all of them were older than you, even the youngest was a decade older than you.
Suddenly curiosity flooded you⌠why would Minho suddenly want so many people on his property, Minho was so reserved and enjoyed solitude, and his home being invaded by 11 people sounded so exhausting, even for you who hoped not to be the main hostess, you thought that he definitely had a reason and you wanted to find out what it was about. Minho on the other hand was nervous, it was more than obvious that there was a reason but he didnât feel completely confident about sharing the idea with you⌠without you calling him sick. A very very sick man, invading your privacy and abusing your trust, but since just a few days ago the disturbing idea did not leave his mind and he wanted to act slow, seeing the result of his craziest thoughts.
ŕšŕŁ âŕšŕŁ â¸ á¨â â・°
âDo you want to say goodbye to our privacy for the weekend?â you mentioned cheekily, moving dangerously close to Minho.
Itâs been five days already, since your boyfriend prepared each one of them with every little detail to go to his house in the forest and make a good impression as a host, with his closest friends and some of their wives.
He frowned in confusion, small dewdrops falling on his straight, short, dark hair, as he closed the back door of his SUV where he had stowed all the luggage.
âHuh?â
âI mean⌠I love fucking in the cabin with you and now weâll be with more people aroundâ you commented, pouting a little.
Minho chuckled, incredulously running his tongue along his cavity, amused by your comment, he looked so fucking good, his face just awake, still him in all his senses.
âGod, y/n, itâs seven in the morningâ he smiled amused with his hands on his hips, almost indignant, âYouâre thinking about sex this early?â
You blushed, âMmm, Iâm kinda horny.â
âWasnât last night enough?â
You denied frantically, wrapping your arms around his body, âI can never get enough of youâŚâ
Minho released a chuckle, returning your tight embrace, wrapping his strong arms around your lower back and drawing you into his body as an adorable but mischievous smile graced his pretty face and he looked at your countenance in amusement.
âMmm, okay, but we canât be late, itâll be quickâŚâ he mentioned in a low, thick voice, moaning softly in jest as he walked around moving your body trapped in his arms, alerting all your senses.
You were glad, you smiled happily moving the muscles of your face and raising your ears on the spot, being touched by Minho always put you in a perfect mood.
âWeâll be right on timeâ you replied, lost in the closeness of his face, lips, and soft chin.
âIt better be because that fucker Seungmin is always on time.â
You laughed, somewhat stunned letting yourself be carried by his steps to the entrance of his home, where once inside, Minho pushed you against the door and took your lips passionately, surprising you a little, you tasted the fleshiness of his lips and his fresh breath from his oral hygiene just a few minutes ago, his left hand held your cheek while with the other he squeezed your waist tightly; you had dressed so cute and autumnal that your boyfriend had to kiss you after seeing you all dressed up, hair and make up done, dressed in your denim mini skirt, sweater and thin scarf while he was telling you in your ear and between kisses how cute you looked, how much he loved you and how you looked like a cute little doll like that, completely ruining the random lip combo you had chosen, he also got horny seeing you like that, with your mini skirt and such a candid look, getting even jealous for slight seconds that his friends would also see you like this every day, since you werenât confident enough with them to walk around in your comfortable and loose clothes inside the home, so you had packed different and elaborate outfits with all your necessary makeup, Minho was heated halfway through your kissing session, but unlike you, he knew how to calm down and didnât ask to do it right there, but it certainly left you wanting more, with your poor core muscles tingling restlessly, but you just watched as your boyfriend stopped, pretending to be shocked and busy, saying he had to get everything into the car and if you would help him, leaving you pining, but right now he was kissing you with much more intensity than a few minutes ago, his body was getting closer and closer to yours to the point where you could feel the hardness of the door on your back and the stiff denim of his crotch with his hard penis trapped in it, rubbing against you.
It took you small seconds to keep up with him, his lips and tongue moving nimbly across you and you couldnât help but feel the typical tingle in your bottom, enjoying the moment and fantasizing about how much you love sex and intimacy with your boyfriend. It wasnât something you used to remark on, but your mind kept spinning on how much of an expert Minho was with you, it wasnât like you were the most expert at sex either since, after all, he was the first with you in everything and he was the only person you knew sexually, but he made you feel so great, he knew exactly where to touch you and how to drive you crazy, if that made you young and naive you didnât care, you loved every moment of the day you got to explore with him, explore the endless desire and pleasure you had until you were panting after you climaxed so intensely.
Minho loved every part of you, he used to ignore the fact that you were younger than him and were slightly a doll to him, so moldable and manipulable to his desire, but he put that aside âor at least he convinced himself to do soâ and was quite the gentleman with you, because he loved you, even though sometimes, most of the time, he notices the way you love to be treated a little rough in bed, driving him absolutely wild, fantasizing in all the ways you both could get to fulfill both of your fantasies. In fact, he notices every detail about you, it is inevitable for him not to be aware of you and to be deeply obsessed with you, your relationship started that way, with piercing glances from him to you in places where he should have been professional and kept his posture, but you were the fucking temptation in person, making his life miserable the time he couldnât have you.
But now, he had you all to himself, all the time, every moment you both desired, Minho adored every inch of you, he praised the ground you walked on, he loved that you were his and taking you around as his most special person and his most prized possession and award, nothing took away his smug smile every time he held your hand in public, he adored possessing you so his deep kisses trapped every part of you as you felt the warmth of his organ separate from you to go down to your neck, gently pulling the thin fabric of your scarf, causing you to tingle and shiver but the feeling didnât stop, as you suddenly felt his lips on your neck, breathing in your scent, kissing your skin, losing himself in the pure paradise that the sweetness of your being was giving him.
Minho took a deep breath, his libido on edge and his cock throbbing at your slightest proximity, he was losing his mind, he wanted to bite your skin, to revel in your sweet moans of his teeth mistreating your docile young skin but he held back, like a man aware in his senses, but lately he has been holding back a lot when it came to you, one part of him wondered why and the other knew exactly the reason, with a slight prickling sensation in his chest, Minho has been thinking too much about it.
âFuck, bunny, I canât fuck you right now, but Iâll be quick and take care of that needy part of youâ he whispered into your neck, his heaving breath rocking you, âWe canât be lateâŚ. or, fuck it, do you want me to fuck you now?â
His right hand traveled from your waist to your pussy, cupping it for a moment, sending a pang of sudden surprise arousal through your body, you bit your lip, still with the feel of his on yours, with his taste and the madness it was taking you to feel the tip of his nose brush against your neck.
âItâs okay, Minhoâ you answered without thinking, and without even reasoning a single word he had said, you werenât thinking clearly, your hormones were high, and you just enjoyed the pressure of his palm on your clit.
âYeah, what?â he murmured in amusement, pulling away from you to stand in front of you, with a half smile, enjoying your docile expression of pleasure.
You looked up at him into his huge, completely dark eyes which watched you expectantly. You blinked to try to reason but he pressed his hand against your center again making you release a soft moan.
âWeâll be lateâŚâ you replied with difficulty, your face was turning red, you were starting to get hot, âYou can do whatever you wantâŚâ
âSay what you want, nowâ he ordered, his sudden switch surprised you but you liked it at all, he sounded so serious.
âCan you take care of me quickly, pleaseâ you almost gasped in supplication.
âYou just love when I make you feel good, donât you?â he replied haughtily with a smile on his face, giving you a fleeting kiss.
Minho quickly slid to the floor, staying right at the height of your skirt, which he lifted it and his smile somehow got bigger as he saw you wearing tiny protective shorts under it, something in him quickly fantasized about the fact that you were not a bad girl looking for evil, you could be spontaneous and naughty and only wearing your underwear underneath, instead you were protecting yourself as you would be at least almost 72 hours along with more men.
âGood girlâ he whispered, panting and mumbling, yanking roughly at your shorts and panties.
You watched Minho, glancing down at him from above, you couldnât deny how incredibly aroused you were and of all the areas of your body that cried out to be touched, it was in more desperation your sweet throbbing cunt, you wandered between your thoughts and his lewd acts; if only you had ignored the fact that Minho had to receive his friends and decided to be completely filled by him, you would already be naked, pressed against his body as the two of you created more tension, as he prepared your body well before fucking you hard because Minho loves to have you so wet, messed up before finally inserting his well-endowed manhood into you, it was something so common with him, but no, instead, before you could even process it, your handsome boyfriend captured your pussy in his mouth, leaving you stunned and gasping, kissing your area dirtily and nimbly, his lower lip and tongue caressing your folds, labia and clit, his upper lip rubbing on your pubic skin, sucking finely. You thought about how much you enjoyed having him eat you whole and, that if he decided to do it with the same delicacy and passion with which he always gives you oral sex, you would only drag out your orgasm and that might lead you to fall behind with your journey, but you were so needy all of a sudden, that a little bit of your boyfriendâs magic and movements in your desperate spot was enough for you just now.
Minho looked into your eyes raising his gaze and did not take his mouth away from you, he closed it, daintily brushing his lips to gently kiss your mons pubis and moved towards you again, parting your folds and losing himself in your pulsing clit, sucking on it, not caring about your skirt in his mission, as it was tight enough to stay stuck above your hips. You intertwined your hand in his soft hair, enjoying your boyfriendâs warm cavity in your slick. Minho was equally or worse exasperated, so he couldnât help but torture himself further and in one swift movement he unbuttoned his jeans with one of his hands and pulled his cock out, almost grunting with your pussy in his mouth at the sensation of his hard piece of flesh exposed, pumping in pleasure, he stroked it, filling his hand with his own precum and began to masturbate gently, while with you he remained somewhat rough.
His suction increased in intensity, making you let out a squeal and then bite your lip, his tongue was increasing in speed, his licks were more constant and deeper, you were building your orgasm magically, but you lost your mind as you felt his fingertips caress your folds and then run them more roughly through your wetness until they sought your entrance, teasing you with a single finger, then inserting two, effectively thrusting them inside you, you were a mess of sighs and heavy breathing but you let out an audible moan again as you felt his third finger in you and the gentle nibble of his teeth on your sensitive area.
You were both in bliss, his cock being stimulated by himself to orgasm but not missing a beat in you, finding himself multitasking as he satisfied you with his hand and mouth. You began to shudder, feeling the tense climax in every inch of your body, his fingers were filling you, his tongue licking you all over making incredible shocks of pleasure come to you as you looked into his eyes from time to time, his whole pretty face buried in your core as he struggled with himself masturbating. You gasped in exasperation as you moaned his name, you loved moaning his name, stroking his hair, watching him satisfy you. Your stiff muscles ached but your core was being divinely pleasured and without warning, you cum on your boyfriendâs magical fingers fucking your insides.
Minho pulled his fingers out to taste every part of you one last time, jerking his cock hard until he squeezed and expelled every drop of cum loaded in his sizzling arousal, groaning through his teeth as he ran his thick tongue naughtily cleaning every part of you, making you slightly restless again and hard to recover from your orgasm, because you knew it was a little provocative game Minho liked to play on you, but before you could become aroused again, he broke away from you, raising his face to look at you, his mouth glistening from you, smiling genuinely happy as if he had tasted something finely delicious.
âGo on, princess, go get cleaned up, Iâll do the same and meet you here at the front door to go, okay?â spoke Minho softly.
You were both agitated, but satisfied that you couldnât have asked for anything better before starting your little adventure in the forest of which you had no idea what you were in for or about to do so in the meantime you kept calm about it, but the more you thought about it and the closer and closer you got to your destination, you were terrified of the idea of looking like an immature girl who was all the time next to her boyfriend because she didnât have enough confidence with the rest of the people who would be there, because the more you thought about it the more absurd it seemed to you the matter or the reason for such a weekend. You tried to look on the bright side, but deep down you hoped it wouldnât be a long or tedious weekend at all.
You two went to get cleaned up and returned with big smiles to get into Minhoâs car and drive a little over two hours out of the city to officially head into the woods. You fixed your makeup on the way as Minho drove, gently squeezing your thigh as he gave you a smile and headed off on his way to his property, you returned the sweet gesture with a smile and excitedly, did your best not to sleep, talked the whole ride with Minho and had fun selecting music.
âPlay something from IU, babyâ commented your boyfriend watching you holding your phone to handle the music, then looking back towards the highway.
âIUâŚâ you replied playfully, squinting your eyes and pouting at him, annoyed.
Minho laughed and the rest of the ride was so enjoyable, you were a little sleepy but it was enough for you to see the attractive profile side of your partner and suddenly you would blurt out something that came to your mind. But in moments of silence, when the music was the only thing that accompanied you, you thought about the situation, it was obvious that Minho wanted to spend some time with his friends and he would leave you with the wives of his best friends but⌠what the fuck could you talk about? You were a recent college graduate, your hobbies were so normal and banal to those of a young girl your age, but from there also came your uncertainty and insecurity that you would be judged and that they would think of you exactly the same but with Minho, if you are young and your vision or ambitions were oriented differently, then what were you doing with Minho, but it was an answer that you could respond surprisingly with the most cheesy and even childish words, but because you loved him, the support was mutual and thatâs why you were with him.
âMaybe⌠this weekend you can finally find inspiration, sweetie.â
You hummed in response as you nodded softly as he interrupted your thoughts, but right after hearing that you went back to diving into them and the constant worry you had about writing something; Minho noticed your silence immediately wanting to remedy the problem.
âOh, my dear, I wasnât telling you that to pressure you, you have time, enjoy, I love youâ he said worriedly, speaking fast and controlling his impulses to let go of the steering wheel to hug and touch you.
âOh, it wasnât thatâ you replied unconcerned and somewhat guilty that you made him feel bad, âItâs okay, Iâm sorry, Minho. Thank you.â
All the things Minho did for you. Or at least you always thought so. You just wondered if you could ever give it back to him.
Some time later you arrived at his house, your excitement and nerves grew once the tires of his car passed through the forest dirt and on a cool, beautiful October morning, two lovers stood in front of the house you never thought held surprises for you.
The cabin, as Minho used to like to call it, looked the same as you remembered it the last time you went, in the summer just a few months ago, but the atmosphere was cooler, the sky was gray and it was adorned all around by the beautiful autumn color palette, it was cozy, it was absolutely all the essence of your lover Lee Minho in one property.
âIâll take the things out, hon. If you want to sleep you can go inside, itâs all ready, the housekeeper left it spotlessâ he added, coming up to you to hug you and pin you against his car door.
âItâs okay. Iâm not sleepy, reallyâ you wrapped your arms around his neck, âBesides your friends could be here any minute.â
And just as you said that, you both could hear perfectly besides the sound of the wind and leaves flying, the sound a car driving up to your direction. You both turned your head to the left waiting for the car to show itself, until it did a few minutes later.
âWas he coming behind us and we didnât see him?â added Minho amused, not releasing his grip on your waist.
You didnât react, you were so comfortable with your arms on his shoulders that you both watched in anticipation as the car parked and the people got out of it.
Kim Seungmin. Just the person Minho had said would arrive first. Minho had all these characters as best friends. Kim Seungmin, superstar baseball player married to the model and creative director and manager of one of the most famous girl groups currently, basically she was a socialite and businesswoman, Jung Jisook, but better known as Kim Jisook legally taking her husbandâs last name.
You felt the womanâs judging look as she lowered her Chanel sunglasses from her face, watching as you and Minho continued like two lovebirds cuddling. You felt bad for a small moment and slowly stopped hugging your boyfriend, who also gently pulled away from you to move closer to his friend.
âFuck, Minho, Iâm early againâ Seungmin said suddenly, putting his hands on his hips falsely indignant.
âNice to see you again, Minho, the house is beautiful and you have the lake for yourself, amazing. I want a lake house too nowâ added the woman happily, approaching your boyfriend to greet him, âThank you for inviting us.â
âHow are you Jisook? Itâs good to see you too, and donât worry, my house is your house. Howâs Jungmin?â
Jungmin, the Kimâs little two year old boy. You havenât met him yet.
âMy sister is taking care of him by herself these daysâ Seungmin replied, âWhy did you bring us here again?â he joked, âAh, by the way, nice to see you againâŚ. Y/n, Iâm Kim Seungmin in case you donât remember.â
You let out a giggle, you were absorbed by the situation around you that you had even forgotten to speak.
âHelloâ you replied shyly, waving your hand, âMr. and MrsâŚâ
âSeungmin, pleaseâ he interrupted you with a smile to which you nodded, he looked straight at his wife, waiting for her to do the same.
âJisookâ she replied despondently.
You bit your lip nervously, you understood and felt her slight disdain for you as before you, in Minhoâs life there was someone else, his ex-wife Miyeon, who you were very much aware is still a close friend of his best friendsâ current wives.
âWell, settle in, make yourselves comfortable, Y/n will show you to your room."
âYou seriously have rooms for everyone? Thatâs greatâ Jisook added, âHoney we should get something like that, wouldnât that be fun?â
âThe forest at night?â her husband replied, âNo thanks, Minho likes it because heâs a maniac.â
You laughed at his comment and waited for Seungmin to put their bags down. You watched him carefully, you had to confess that each of Minhoâs friends had their own particular charm and, each of them were really attractive men. Seungmin had innocent looking, droopy-kind eyes, short black hair and a manly, elegant and slim build, with a clean and slightly boyish appearance.
You finally opened the house and led the Kims into the room your boyfriend had previously indicated. You saw Jisook inspecting the place as she walked in and somewhat awkwardly you were about to leave them alone when a âThank you, y/nâ from Seungmin stopped you for a second.
You didnât know if you were crazy, if you were seeing things that werenât but Seungminâs tender and kind look at you changed for a second, his dark eyes were shining and you could notice how he subtly checked you out, somewhat mischievously. You smiled and walked out, frowning and wondering if it was all in your imagination.
But there were so many of their intentions that you didnât know, Minhoâs big little secret baiting you, you were the main attraction, the real reason for those menâs stay at Lee Minhoâs cabin.
You rejoined Minho outside the house, watching each of his friends arrive, taking surprise after surprise as you watched each attractive man walk through the door of the house behind you as you directed them to their room since that was the task Minho had assigned for you.
Next, Seo Changbin, who complained when he arrived and did not think he would be early, but it was all arranged by his wife who wanted to be near the lake; he was an aeronautical engineer with a PhD and a professor at the prestigious university where Lee Minho himself was also a faculty member; accompanied by his pretty model wife and owner of a womenâs sportswear line, Seo Chaeryeong. Changbin, in addition to mathematics, loved to keep his image healthy and exercise, so his appearance was muscular and his eyes were so uniquely shaped.
Next, Lee Felix, arriving alone, something about him looked anxious but happy, he was a handsome, freckled, big eyed man with long, blond, dyed hair, he arrived confident with a blue designer suitcase, Felix was a programmer who worked importantly designing video games or something like that you understood from Minho. Right behind him came Hwang Hyunjin, a painter who owned galleries with his wife Vittoria, an exclusive interior designer, who had, together with Hyunjin, been involved in much of the cabinâs interior for years now.
Later at about the same time, Bahng Chan, owner of a boxing academy, which Minho attended, and chief of police in the city, together with his wife Miah, who you had no idea what she did but lived a good life with Chan. After him, Yang Jeongin, the youngest of your group of friends, editor-in-chief of a major fashion magazine, arriving with a huge smile and charisma, secretly being one of your boyfriendâs favorites.
At this point you were exahusted, you didnât expect to see so many people all of a sudden, you had forgotten your social battery, but finally, your boyfriendâs best friend, Han Jisung, the handsome Han Jisung, producer and composer of major entertainment companies, could not be missed.
They were all, the house was certainly full, a few hours had passed and you were already starting to judge each one with a bit of your writerâs mind, but you decided to ignore it, letting yourself be carried away by the simplicity of the time. Minho had planned it all, cooking for you, getting together for lunch, setting up around the house so you could relax, you were having a good time leaving the fact that you felt highly judged by the four women older than you.
The first day went so well, you went to sleep with Minho kissing him sweetly good night but⌠the nightmare came the next morning, when your boyfriend distanced himself from you to spend some time with friends and you were forced to spend time with the eccentric and millionaire women, at first it went well, Chaeryeong, the youngest after you, invited you to run early along the forest, which you accepted, when you were about to do so, her husband was outside, preparing some things with the other guys, setting up camping tents because apparently they would be spending the night outside today and after she gave Changbin a quick kiss and started jogging, he gave you a half smile and you couldnât help but feel watched again, just like the first day Seungmin did, in fact you have been feeling watched, heavy gazes on you.. but you thought you were starting to get paranoid, they didnât bother you, but they confused you too much⌠why were they looking at you, as if you were in the spotlight and suddenly they wanted to eat you with their eyes.
You didn't give the matter a second thought, you came in from your little exercise, clearing your mind by jogging through the trees, feeling the cool air hit your face, leaving you breathless and in a cold sweat. You went back to the cabin, showered and dressed up again this time slightly more comfortable and natural, you thought you were going for a quiet afternoon, but your boyfriend forced you to spend the rest of the afternoon with the women in the town 40 minutes away.
You couldnât believe it, there you were, in Hwang Hyunjinâs car while his wife was driving, you didnât know if Minho was waiting for them to become your best friends overnight, but it was absurd⌠they were something unbelievable. You didnât want to judge them as women blinded in the perfect life and glamour, but they were exactly that, you didnât blame them, if you had the necessary money god knows how unbearable you would become too, but, being with other people, seeing the sunsets and the sunrise from a new perspective, all those little factors that were making you become yourself again little by little, you were inspired.
You arrived, spent a nice night under the stars and a campfire, eating smores, telling absolutely everything, each one was so talkative in their own way, you could feel why Minho appreciated them a lot, but the robots at their sides didnât help them at all, you wanted to love them, you wanted to feel in the closeness and trust of women, but you had such neutral opinions about them, they judged with their eyes every time they laughed loudly and you understood that sometimes it was annoying, but not to be reflected that way all the time. The camping tents were in vain, in the end everyone went to sleep inside, that night Minho surprised you, being overly affectionate all of a sudden.
âLook at the viewâ he said, hugging you from behind, sniffing the smell of your hair as he pointed to the window.
Darkness and more darkness, only a pine tree being dimly illuminated by the light outside. You never stopped to think how scary it looked at night because you were all the time accompanied by Minho and you felt completely safe.
âIt looks scaryâ you spoke your mind.
âIt really does, a little bitâ he spoke in your ear, turning you unexpectedly to face him.
You looked into his eyes, you understood exactly what was going on.
âI need youâ he confessed to you.
Your cheeks turned pink, you were a little shy to have sex because it was so likely that they could hear you, in that case, Felix, Jeongin and Jisung who slept in the same room near yours.
âI donât know, Min, I don't want to be vulgar and be overheardâŚâ you expressed apologetically.
Minhoâs mind spun around, vulgarity, noise, scandal, it was all he could think of lately.
âIf you donât want to do it princess thatâs fine, but if you want to do it we can be so, so quietâ he whispered, seducing you as he brought his face dangerously close towards you.
You kissed him. And he got his way that night, it wasnât like you refused either and, with a hand over your mouth, trying to cancel out any noise coming from you, you and Minho fucked that night. The forest was silent, your muffled moans and Minhoâs withheld moans decorated that night.
ŕšŕŁâŕšŕŁâ¸á¨ââ・°
The next morning you woke up without the silhouette of your lover by your side, you took a shower and got ready to go downstairs for lunch but everything was particularly quiet that Sunday morning, your last day of adventure.
You looked around a bit scared, it was as if there was no one else in the house, giving you chills, lunch was ready, at least yours, set on the kitchen island, but there was no one there, but suddenly Minhoâs presence managed to scare you a bit.
âYouâre awake, baby. Come, weâre outside, have lunch here with us.â
Minho spoke softly to you, giving you a kiss on the cheek and taking the plate of food, the glass and the cutlery to head towards the back area of the house where Minho had a sort of balcony or small living room outside to relax. You were glad not to be alone for a moment, but the strange feeling inside you returned when you saw that it was only his seven best friends sitting there. You felt the piercing gaze of each of them with every step you took.
âHey, Y/nâ Chan greeted you to which you smiled nervously, sitting down.
âHiâ you replied to everyone in general.
You just wondered where their wives could be and how seeing you there alone among them all was questionable, or was it just your mind making you think that.
You were a little shy, yet you dared to look at each of their faces, it really seemed as if they knew something you didnât, they were hiding something.
The rest of your lunch none of the wives showed up and you felt so shy to ask, but none of them felt shy with you, questioning you down to the smallest detail.
You didnât understand what was going on, but they did.
ŕšŕŁ âŕšŕŁ â¸ á¨â â・°
Finally back home almost at dusk, you couldnât help but think about the way you met Minho and that maybe thatâs one of the main reasons why you were getting disapproving looks from wives, you knew it was wrong, it wasnât the best of cases but it happened, you released sparks and your love was born unexpectedly. You had met Minho in a somewhat unfavorable way, in your last winter at the university before graduating, Lee Minho was your professor. At first there was nothing but sighs and complicit glances that you thought were only coming from you, but you didnât know you were driving Minho crazy and over time⌠it was inevitable, you got closer and closer to each other on winter break, he took you on clandestine dates, showed you his home, showed you his heart and a side of him that he didnât think would ever come out again after his divorce, but by January he was already confessing to you that he had never flirted or fallen in love with a student⌠that the fatality of the situation was inevitable⌠but that if somehow you both had to try, you didnât hesitate, at that point you were so immersed in him, everything had his name written all over it and it was perhaps because he was your first great love. You started dating secretly until you graduated and by June he offered you to live with him to which after thinking it over, you accepted and everything with you had been wonderful so far, everything could have been perfect if it wasnât for your constant feeling of stagnation at work.
You looked at your boyfriendâs profile side and reenacted in your mind the slightly weird moment when he almost forced you to spend with his 7 best friends, you knew you shouldnât take it that way, but all the women leaving and leaving you alone with 8 men was a situation you were left to think about⌠but you were so sweet and naive that you didnât have the slightest idea of the thoughts that ruled the mind of the one you used to think of him as a sweet and tender lover, Minhoâs thoughts.
Minho had a degree in languages, literature, in grammar, courses and postgraduate degrees in publishing and among countless other things that surprised you, his family owned a popular and old publishing house which only further developed Minhoâs passion for literature and one of the things that made him fall in love with you was your sensual and unique way of writing, the way you chose the words to develop the perfect paragraph of whatever it was you wanted to put forward, the subtlety of your eroticism in words, for when you were both secretly lovers you used to write short stories from a compilation of these in a book he published under his publisher under a pseudonym you both chose, the thrill of something so morally wrong, the ephemeral and forbidden sex in his office, all that motivated you so much, but now he lived with a broken heart that you couldnât find something concrete to write about so you could have your first book.
Minho saw you frustrated even though you tried to hide it, and on several occasions he witnessed how much you used to write in a notebook, by hand, to which he curiously asked you one night what it was about, to which you nervously answered that it was just your personal diary.
At first he didnât care, he thought it was cute the way you still wrote by hand, when even he couldnât keep that level of commitment, but one night, a Saturday night to be exact, a week before he proposed to visit his house in the forest, you went out with one of your friends leaving him alone, so he came into your office, really without any purpose, he saw the chair in front of your desk and remembered how tenderly nervous you were when he found out you had a personal diary, suddenly, curiosity invaded him: Minho knew he shouldnât, that he was invading your privacy but he was so curious to know, he shared all his secrets with you, but how many of them you kept.
And then, he looked for your diary, finding it after searching, you had hidden it. He wasnât going to sit down and read every page of your privacy as if it were the damned newspaper, he was just curious about what you were saying most recently, to which, that night, with his heart racing, he opened the journal and read, with a smile as he visualized your calligraphy on the paper.
I have had fantasies. I honestly donât know why if sex with Minho is wonderful. Itâs just⌠at first it was these dreams, so hot Iâd wake up in a daze, with wetness in my panties, feeling it so real, but Iâd forget them right away, they were blurry memories of this one and sometimes I just thought they were dreams where I recreated something sexual with Minho, sex on the couch, sex in the kitchen but, god, I sound like a perverted, sexually frustrated older woman in her declining sex life, but, I had this encounter, with one of Minhovs best friends ...
Minhoâs heart almost stopped beating for a second and he turned pale when he read that, continuing in panic with the reading, almost wanting to close the journal and not thinking that it could be about what he feared the most, an infidelity. He read on.
⌠and I think from there, for some reason my subconscious has gone crazy. I was always a firm believer that dreams sometimes had meanings, sometimes they were random products of your mind⌠but the fact that you imagine even when you are asleep seems incredibly fascinating to me, I always liked dreams, even if they are nightmares, itâs just that, itâs an indicator that your brain never turns off even for a second, I donât know, itâs something difficult to explain that fascinates me too much. The point is, I ran into one of his best friends while I was doing some grocery shopping and we had a nice talk and I couldnât help but think how different he was from Minho but the way I liked him so much, he is so handsome, I must admit, he has an exceptional charisma and I think from there my fantasies have grown, I think he is the one I dream about.
Minho stopped reading for a second to look at your manuscript in disbelief. While thousands of not so friendly thoughts ran through his mind: who were you talking about? What the fuck was that all about? Did you like a friend of his? Who? What was going on?
For a moment I had the idea of writing about that, about a woman who frequently has fantasies about her boyfriendâs best friend, but I donât know, I hope to elaborate and not fall into clichĂŠ, besides, what purpose can it serve? Will it be a book about infidelity? Am I unconsciously being unfaithful to Minho? I know minho is not like that, that if I tell him the idea and show him a draft he will be brutally honest and judge as a critic and not as a boyfriend, but I am so uncertain, what if he thinks it is something that happens to me, something I am somehow becoming very familiar with, or am I just overthinking it?
I talked about it with my friends, they told me itâs normal at the same time yes and at the same time no, they laughed at me saying that after all I just wanted to fuck his best friend, but then they argued something that left me thinking more than I already was.
First times and only loves. Minho is the only thing I know of love and I love him. But, it was also my first sexual relationship and my friends argued that itâs only because Iâve never tried another man other than Minho before.
I thought it was absurd, I love him, everything with him is great, the way he touches me and makes me feel, I can easily say that I want to be all my life with him, but the idea had already been embodied in me, they were right, he has been the only man, but it is normal that only sometimes I think what will it feel like to explore with more?
I donât want to leave him, I love him, I donât want to cheat on him either, but Iâm young and I want to experiment. But Iâm also young and I donât think clearly.
The more Minho read, the more dizzy he became, the next thing, he was astonished, words written by you of an explicit description of everything you would like to do, or at least, everything you dreamed of with a man who was not him. You described him as stronger, firm and rigid fingers going through your core, strong thighs hitting your body every time he penetrated you⌠god, Minho read absolutely everything with frightened eyes, he wished he didnât.
Curiosity killed the cat. Minho had stopped fantasizing about other women because with you he had it all⌠but your argument drove him crazy, he did have experience with more women, but for you Minho was everything, he didnât know whether to be flattered or confused.
He knew it was wrong and he shouldnât have read it in the first place but, the stunned left his body after a couple of days and something in him was ignited, the fact that you were so sexually turned on and wanted to try all kinds of sizes⌠his thoughts werenât exactly sweet, he imagined your sweet face while you were being fucked, wasnât that what you wanted and craved so much?
If you wanted to experiment with more men, why not do it with what he already knew and had full trust in.
The idea was unhinged and he didnât know how to put it to his friends, until he said it, so suddenly and in a serious tone as he used to be, a simple and classic Minho, gathered in tranquility, he blurted out:
âMmm, I think we should fuck Y/n.â
His friends looked at him puzzled, doubting if they had heard right. They knew how special you were to Minho, why would he offer something so insane? Or was it a joke?
It was a crazy idea, but in the end, they all agreed.
On the other hand, on the way Minho questioned you if you had felt good and if you had noticed the unhappiness and frustration on his friendsâ faces about the marriage, you found it strange because you idealized marriage so much and expected it to be the most sacred thing, hoping that one day you could unite your life forever with his.
ŕšŕŁ âŕšŕŁ â¸ á¨â â・°
And then you were seduced to another weekend in the forest, you were happy as your writing had flowed so naturally and your boyfriendâs gentle proposal filled you with excitement again.
âLetâs go one more time to the cabin, finally without so many peopleâ he mentioned to you spontaneously, while you were tending the garden in autumn as he gave you a resounding kiss on the cheek.
There you were again, but just as you arrived you got the huge surprise that you already had visitors.
âWhat is this? I thought we would be aloneâ you said to Minho before getting out of the car.
You werenât upset just confused by his strange behavior lately.
âRelax, princess. Itâs just 3 of my friends, they adore you, come on.â
Minho was quick to get out of the car. It seemed as if Bahng Chan, Hwang Hyunjin and Lee Felix were waiting for you. Again you felt inside you that feeling that they were planning and hiding something you had no idea about.
You greeted them. You tried to be okay but it bothered you that Minho was telling you half the things, or so you felt.
âHi, Y/n, what do you want to do today?â greeted you sweetly Hyunjin of which you were a bit confused.
Minho gave him a withering look as you both walked towards the entrance. Everyone was nervous but tried to hide it.
âCampfire? Camping? A movie?â added Chan.
âGo to the lake with meâ interrupted Felix.
You looked at them strangely because just a week ago your talks were still a bit formal, you didnât talk much like you could say that with all the confidence, but you didnât take it badly, you liked them, you saw the kindness of their intentions, or at least you thought so, they were nice men worthy of Minhoâs love so, you liked them too.
âNoâ Minho replied almost annoyed.
âIâm fine, thank you, what can we do Minho?â you asked innocently.
You managed to raise the gazes of the other men, seeing how you sought Minhoâs opinion on everything.
They remembered that moment in the backyard of Felixâs house where Minho summoned them when he told them about his crazy idea.
âShe's⌠pretty and submissive, itâs cute, she seeks my approval but honestly Iâll could never be able to say no to her.â
âToo pretty Iâd sayâ Changbin added amused.
Minho gave him a dirty look.
âAnd she asked you that she wanted to be fucked by 8 guys and you couldnât say no to her?â joked Seungmin.
âNo. Itâs not like that, itâs just, itâs something I know.â
âWho in the world asks his friends if they want to gangbang his girlfriend?â provoked Seungmin.
âShut your mouth, Seungmin, if you donât want to participate then forget thisâ Minho spat.
âOh no, Iâm inâ he quickly replied scoffing.
The rest of the friends laughed.
âThen why the fuck do you have toâŚâ Minho was about to comment but was interrupted by Felix.
âWhat do you know, you said you knew something.â
Attention went to the freckled man but once as soon as Minho warmed up his vocal cords to respond, all 7 pairs of eyes focused on him.
âI read something from her, how sheâs young and currently has been fantasizing about being with more men becauseâŚ. shit, I donât want to stir up your dirty fantasies, but-â
âAs if this wasnât dirty enough alreadyâ Jeongin muttered with a grin. Minho continued.
â⌠Iâm the only man sheâs been with, she has no other experiences besides me so, I donât know, it came to my mind to give her more experiences, me, deciding with whom, maybe itâs fear so she wonât go and cheat on me with some idiot I donât know.â
âThen itâs better that she cheats on you with your idiot friends, how thoughtfulâ Jisung spoke, joking.
But the idea that you were inexperienced flew in the heads of each of the men, they always wondered how Minho could have you, but now the most important issue for them was that now they could have you too. They were more than delighted.
Eight guys for you alone seemed so aggressive to Minho, so he divided his group of friends, Chan, Hyunjin, Felix and him on Friday; Jisung, Changbin, Seungmin and Jeongin would arrive early tomorrow.
The afternoon went fast. The men were so ready, but you had no idea.
During dinner, somewhat early, you felt Minhoâs hand provoke your center under your skirt, caressing your thighs, squeezing your clit. You hadnât thought about sex until Minho touched you.
Although you had to admit, seeing Chan always turned your cheeks red, because he was the one you fantasized about. Chan was so cute, he had a cute and contagious laugh, his face changed harmoniously every time he smiled, he was attentive, you got to know him a little more at the supermarket, when he had left work and was doing his shopping. But⌠none of his other friends were bad at all, if you looked at them in detail, it was hard to say you werenât attracted to at least more than one, or all of them, you felt like a little slut but, you were young and they were handsome men.
After that, you tried to watch a movie, but after 20 minutes they all went outside with the weird excuse of wanting to go get some air, you watched them confused leave and you were just left with your boyfriend, sitting on the couch.
âUh, itâs going to start raining, they should go insideâ you said, suddenly remembering the weather forecast and the sounds of thunder falling recently.
Heavy rain was coming, and not just meteorologically.
âY/nâ Minho spoke softly to you, placing his hand on your bare thigh.
Your attention returned to him, you were turned facing the direction the boys had left a short while ago.
âYes?â
Minho sighed, nervous, you put your hands on his back worrying immediately, you were about to speak but he said.
âI have this crazy idea, if you donât want to do it thatâs fine. Seriously, we can forget I said itâŚâ you looked at him scared, every faction of his face lit up by the TV as the movie continued to play, âI want you to experiment more, I want you to be free to try other men.â
You couldnât believe what you were hearing, it was as if he had entered your head for a second, you turned pale. Minho looked into your eyes, his eyes were shining, they were bigger and pleading as you looked at him scared.
âYou have every right to do itâ he continued, âBut I donât want it to be behind my back or with any asshole. If you want to do it, thatâs what boys are for.â
You looked at him puzzled.
âWhat?â
âYou donât want to have sex with other men? Isnât that what youâve been fantasizing about? Honey, Iâm telling you seriously, you can tell me anything, your every thought and desire and Iâll see about fulfilling every one of them.â
You wanted to scream noo! Logically at those questions, but you kept quiet⌠how did he know so much? Is it true that after all Minho knows you so perfectly that he could now read your mind?
You bit your lip, your world was spinning thinking about what he was implying that you should have sex with his friends. He was right, you thought, the idea was crazy and you should forget he even said it.
But⌠was it true? Or were you dreaming?
A loud thunderclap made you a little jumpy. You needed him to be clear.
âMinho, I- ⌠what do you mean?â
âThat if you want to try more men and have sex you can do it now. Chan, Felix and Hyunjin are waiting for youâ he replied slightly cooler.
You felt a cold breeze hit your skin. If you said yes⌠you were really going to have sex with them, if you said no, nothing will happen.
âAre you for real?â you replied in disbelief.
âI never joked for a second with you, my babyâ he gave you a quick kiss on the lips.
You were perplexed.
âI know itâs hard to think about it, you can take as long as you wantâŚâ
âAnd if I say yes?â you replied uncertainly.
âThen youâre going to have the experiences you wanted so badly.â
The rain came down heavily all of a sudden. The boys went into the house giggling and slightly wet.
Your heart raced, you heard their voices and laughter approach and in the adrenaline of the moment, you responded.
âYes, okay. I accept.â
Minho squeezed your thigh and smiled at you. The three men entered the room slightly wet with huge smiles plastered to their faces, you made eye contact with each of them and then averted your gaze, thinking that all this time they were here so they could fuck you.
You couldnât hide the fact that this strange situation excited every part of you, but then you thought that two of them are married, but one of them is Chan, you were going to try him for the first time. You bit your lip, your mind told you that you should feel remorse but you were not the least bit guilty of being Hyunjin and Chanâs mistress for one night.
ŕšŕŁ âŕšŕŁ â¸ á¨â â・°
You prepared yourself. You were nervous, rambling about the situation that you even took a shower, went back to fix your hair and put on makeup. You knew it was just sex but your mind kept thinking about it, not the dirty act but, what it will be like itself.
Minho came into the room. You were ready, you wanted to look your best for the other men waiting for you downstairs.
âAre you sure you want to do this, sweetheart?â
A flash of lightning illuminated the dark forest. You smiled and nodded, letting yourself be escorted by your boyfriend.
Minho turned on the house lights. He set up the main room, pushed aside the small table to leave the spacious carpeted floor space clear.
The three men sat waiting for you, leering and hungry for some of your young skin.
You sighed and Minho led you to the front of them. From left to right, Hyunjin, Chan and Felix. The rain was still echoing outside as you heard your loud heartbeat even in your ears, you were aroused like you had never been before that you were even afraid to tremble from the excitement built up in your body.
Their appearances, the way they were different and sat differently, their respective looks towards you⌠everything made you shudder.
âWellâ Chan spoke, âcan we begin?â
You nodded softly.
âYou look beautiful, Y/n, by the wayâ Felix suddenly blurted out making you blush.
âRulesâ warned Minho, âwe wonât do anything she feels uncomfortable about, as soon as she asks to stop or that she doesnât like something, we listen to her, okay?â
The men nodded.
âSheâll love itâ Hyunjin stated with a smile.
âWho do you want to start with, princess?â spoke Minho to you.
The question took you by surprise, Minho saw your innocent confused face.
âOh⌠you can start with yourself and, teach usâ whispered your boyfriend seductively, tugging at the hems of your sweater to take it off and leave you in your bra.
The thermostat was on in the house, yet you felt a sudden chill on your exposed skin.
Chan and Hyunjin bit their lip, one hand resting on their thighs as they stirred restlessly, uncomfortable from the large erection trapped in their pants. Felix averted his gaze shyly, but then stood in awe watching the spectacle.
You noticed the bulges in each of their crotches and yours began to throb, you thought how dirty it was, fucking four hot men at once, you had never had another experience beyond Minho and now you were going to have three more at the same time. You were wet and restless.
Minho pulled your skirt down, letting it fall gracefully to the floor, leaving you half naked in front of them.
âFuck, youâre beautifulâ Hyunjin murmured, finally stroking his erection.
âTake off her braâ ordered Chan in a thick voice.
You truly felt like a doll, letting yourself be undressed. Minho removed your bra and couldnât resist the sensation of massaging your breasts with both of his two strong hands. You bit your lip.
âShit, Minho, donât touch her yetâ Chan complained.
Felix watched you with wide eyes, scared but he was so excited, he wasn't sure if he wanted this, he was a little shy, but as soon as he saw you spread your legs and exposed you to the sun, he was ready to give you a little kiss.âCome here, babygirlâ ordered the older one.
Minho slowly let go of you and you obeyed his action by moving closer to him.
âSit on that end and start touching yourself for us, show us your sweet beauty, baby doll.â
You listened to Chan and watched as he pointed to the edge of the couch, to one side of Felix.
You almost moaned at the sensation of your slick fluids, you were so wet and the manly voice that was ordering you around was making you more and more sick. Felix watched you with wide eyes, scared but he was so excited, he wasnât sure if he wanted this, he was a little shy, but as soon as he saw you spread your legs and exposed your glistening pussy, his cock throbbed and his mouth salivated, you look so appetizing he wanted to lick you whole.
The four men moaned softly at the sight of your exposed pussy as you pulled the fabric of your panties aside. You leaned back against the armrest of the couch and acting on a voracious instinct for pleasure, you looked down at your exposed intimate area and began to touch yourself, then looked up at the other men.
You massaged your clit, felt your slick and let yourself go, trying to hide your shyness. You watched each of them closely, Hyunjin and Chanâs slitted, piercing eyes, in contrast to Felixâs big, kind eyes, almost as cute as Minhoâs, who was standing there watching the show you were giving his friends.
You moaned and closed your eyes letting yourself go, you slipped two of your fingers in and they became engrossed in the softness of your digits sliding into your wet entrance; their limbs ached, asking to be touched, while you enjoyed yourself, thinking that something else might be filling you right now. You quickened your pace without thinking, about to bring yourself to orgasm, but Minho interrupted saying.
âStopâ he walked over to you, squatting down in front of you, âKiss me baby, then show the boys how you do it.â
You looked at him confused. You were shaking, a mess, you never thought you would be this excited in your life. You took Minhoâs lips who kissed you wildly, leaving you breathless. Then you felt yourself being taken by someone else, you stood in front of Felix and the man kissed you shyly, enjoying the act.
Felixâs lips were a different sensation than Minhoâs, his timing, his tongue on you that you lasted some time with him, Felix was not able to control himself with you, he wanted you too much. But suddenly, a big hand grabbing your forearm and pulling you away from the blond boy.
Chan took you with ease to settle you on his lap, sitting right on his erection for your pussy on it, taking your hips, pressing you down as he kissed you sensually and made you grind on his cock. You were breathless, your pussy throbbing hard, again enjoying a different and greater sensation of his erection on you, his hands on your body and his lips and tongue exploring you.
When you came to Hyunjin you felt once again like a toy which was being passed between boys, but Hyunjin did not take you desperately like the rest, he took hold of your hand with which you had been masturbating and brought the fingers you were pleasuring yourself with closer to your entrance, to put them in his mouth and suck them erotically while he looked into your eyes.
âMmmâ said Hyunjin happily with a tender expression of pleasure, âYou taste just as I thought, so fucking sweet, baby.â
Finally he took your face between his big slender hands to kiss you, his lips were fuller to the rest, his tongue was slow but skillful, you felt like you were slowly going to heaven.
You had the feeling that you were about to be destroyed.
Chan noticed how lewdly Felix was watching you while you had your moment with Hyunjin, Chan wanted to have some fun, letting the younger one decide first.
âWhat do you want to do, my little mate?â said Chan amusedly to Felix.
Felix swallowed nervously, looked at Chan and then returned your gaze to you. Felix said in an exquisite thick voice.
âLet me eat her.â
You shuddered. As you pulled away from Hyunjin. Your lips were already swollen, each one of them adoring your tenderly agitated expression.
âOkayâ Chan spoke, biting his lower lip and licking them afterwards.
âBabygirl, come here, settle in.â
Chan took you by the hips again and sweetly gestured for you to position your body with your knees on the couch, given the view of your ass to Felix, your torso passing over Chanâs thighs and your face and arms reaching towards Hyunjin.
âWell, enjoy yourselves. You know what to doâ you heard your boyfriend say.
You could imagine what this was about and it made you nervously worked up. Felix was the first to expose his cock, you turned your eyes towards him and could see him stroking his exposed member, to pull down your panties and settle in to bury his pretty face in your core, licking your folds and searching for your clit. You moaned as you felt his warm tongue on you and Chan ran his large hand down your bare back enjoying the view, his hand was gentle but it burned in every part he touched you, you were lost in pleasure, you were reaching levels of arousal you never thought you were capable of feeling.
Chan sought your entrance and teased it with his fingers while Felix kept pleasuring himself on your pussy, you began to shudder and lose strength.
âFuckâ muttered Hyunjin excitedly at the pornographic scene of his blond friend licking your pussy and your submissive position.
Hyunjin pursed his lips and released his cock as well. His was right in front of you, it was big, erect, veiny, its pink tip was covered with his white precum. You felt dirty but you loved every second of it.
âCome on, sweetheart, you can take it.â
You stopped looking at his cock to look him in the eyes and then lowered your gaze again. You moistened your lips and took it between your hands, it felt so good, Felix kept stimulating you and Chan started playing with your breasts while still caressing your back and ass, squeezing it hard at times. You licked Hyunjinâs glans and when you opened your mouth wide to take his hard cock fully, Felix thrust his thick tongue inside you, teasing you uncontrollably. You gasped with Hyunjinâs big cock in your mouth, Felix was stimulating the rest of your cunt with his free hand while he couldn't help jerking off.
You were losing your temper, you wanted to explode in your orgasm, but you continued to taste Hyunjinâs cock, licking his entire length, running your lips along it feeling its thin skin and notorious veins, being accompanied by the sweet gasps of that young artist. Hyunjin grabbed your hair, giving you support as you took his shaft, bobbing your head, but you were getting more and more breathless, your eyes began to glisten, you were so close, you were being distracted by the sensation of your nipples being pinched and your breasts being fondled and how very sticky the oral sex Felix was giving you was getting.
âYouâre doing it so good princessâ Minhoâs voice came next to your ear, âYouâre so cute taking Hyunjinâs cock so well, good girl.â
Your eyes searched for his image, you were sure your expression was a mess, you didnât understand how he looked so cute and peaceful as he witnessed the dirty act of his girlfriendâs mouth being filled by his best friendâs dick. It was sick, twisted, it was so fucking hot you had no self-control.
You were collapsing, losing strength, and struggling not to drop your abdomen onto Chanâs thighs. You whimpered with Hyunjinâs cock in your mouth, drooling, with Felixâs tongue inside you and his fingers on your labia and clit, you collapsed in your first climax, making your body quiver. You pulled Hyunjinâs cock out of your mouth for a moment to enjoy your orgasm, took a breath and moaned loudly. Felix felt his hard penis throbbing and in a low moan he cum in his hand as well.
âAw, baby girlâs first orgasm of the night," Chan spoke tilting his head as he appreciated your trembling body, âGood job, Felix.â
You were weak but skillfully aroused. Your chest was rising and falling with difficulty, you were dizzy between so much pleasure but your mind kept asking that now how would they have fun with you.
He placed you in front of him on his lap again and whispered in your ear:
âNow youâre going to ride daddyâs cock, yes, baby girl?â
His words rocked you. You nodded with big, bright submissive eyes, driving him crazy.
Chan left you in his old place on the couch, stood up and began to undress. Minho plopped down beside you, all watching the little spectacle of the older man undressing.
âAh, this dude canât keep his clothes onâ Minho commented amused.
You turned to see him, he was also so agitated and excited that you felt bad that you didnât have him and could attend to him.
When Chan pulled down his pants and boxers to take them off you were engrossed. He was huge. You bit your lip and subtly denied, feeling afraid and insecure, that was going to break you in two, it wasnât going to fit. But, remembering your boyfriendâs big thick cock there was a good chance you would enjoy it.
âCome here.â
Chan carried you in his arms. You automatically wrapped your legs around his waist, his body was strong, he had big pecs and marked abs. You looked into his eyes⌠you had never been this intimate and vulnerable with anyone but Minho⌠now you were being shared with his best friends.
Chan carried you with one arm while his available hand held the base of his erect cock to rub his soft glans on your pussy. You moaned as you were teased and you fliched in surprise.
âFuck, itâs bigâ you suddenly blurted out between a sigh, causing a smug giggle to come from Chan, you looked up at him still surprised and blushed.
âYou cant take it, babygirl.â
And the next thing you felt was his cock sliding inside you making you whimper. The others watched the act of your body weakening and shuddering as you held tightly to his neck, how your entrance stretched adjusting to Chanâs size as you whimpered louder and louder the deeper he got inside you.
âYou feel so goodâ moaned Chan feeling your walls wrap around his cock completely, âFuck you Minho, he had all of you to himself?â he mumbled.
His cock slid in easily, you were so wet, you shivered hugging yourself to his neck, resting your face on it, you were as full as you had ever been, slightly fuller than Minho made you, the bulge of his cock was noticeable in your lower belly, Chan came deep inside you, staying a few seconds without moving so your walls could get used to him. âCan I move now, little one?â he whispered sweetly to you.
You nodded quickly, sore but excited, "Yes, please⌠daddy."
Chanâs ears turned red as he heard you call him daddy and fill him with his fantasies. He grabbed your buttocks and began to control your body over his cock, going up and down slowly, giving them the erotic view of your sensitive hole being penetrated, of his glistening cock thrusting inside you, capturing the arousal of each of you, causing their hands to go to their respective penises and begin to masturbate at the grotesque image of your entrance being abused by Chanâs big cock as you both moaned in pleasure. Even Minho couldnât take it anymore and pulled his erect cock out to stroke it at the image of your body being absolutely fucked by someone else.
Chan was tearing open every part of you, his pumping cock bouncing into you, his thrusts were gentle, slow and deep, manipulating your body up and down in a sweet rhythm, at that point you were both a mess, your breasts and hard nipples rubbing against his marked pecs as fluids from both of you slid along his cock, trickled out of you onto the floor and stained his sensitive testicles every time you had him deep inside you.
âShitâ gasped Chan, âCome join in, someone can take her from behind.â
The phrase altered your senses amidst the whimpering mess you were being.
âIs that okay with you, angel?â Chan asked you again breathlessly, âFuck your beautiful ass?â
You looked him in the eyes, Felix and Hyunjin were already to the side of you with their hands stroking their cocks.
âY-yes.â
You answered, not sure what could happen. You looked around for Minho with your eyes, he was sitting there watching absolutely everything.
âGoodâ Chan replied, giving you a tender smile disappearing his lips for a second.
Chan pulled out of you suddenly making you whimper, his cock touched his abs as it was loose. Chan didnât hesitate, he laid down on the carpet, dropping you down sitting on his cock with your labia between his rigid member.
âThis way weâre going to fill you completely,â Hyunjin said.
Chan lifted your body to slip his wet cock between your ass, trying to prepare it before they could enter you that way too. You bit your lip at the sensation, you had long felt the knot in your stomach but you were only prolonging your climax. You became restless and nervous again.
âFuck, nobody has any lube?â commented Chan somewhat exasperated.
He didnât want to hurt you, at least he didnât want Hyunjin to, as he positioned himself behind you and Felix stood in front of you, leaving right in your face the sight of his stiff cock.
âItâs okay, Iâll be gentleâ moaned Hyujin, getting on his knees close to Chanâs thighs.
Chan pushed you gently and you quickly understood it was to take his cock again, he lined it up with your entrance as you slowly let yourself fall on top of him, causing you to sigh. You shuddered as you felt Hyunjinâs tip moisten your rear area, rubbing his precum, he parted your buttocks with his hands digging into your skin and entered gently, making you scream louder than Chanâs penis in your vagina.
You whimpered, closing your eyes tightly and biting your lip as the male presences took guilty delight in your suffering. Hyunjin moaned in ragged gasps at the extremely tight sensation of your conduit.
You held yourself tightly in Chanâs abs, whimpering each time you felt his cock deeper in you. You had never had anal sex before and it was burning like hell itself, but the lust in your body was greater than your pain.
âIs it okay, baby doll, are you liking it?â whispered Hyunjin slightly concerned.
âYesâ you whimpered.
Hyunjin was also big and within moments, you were being penetrated on both sides.
"Move slowly, Hyun, let her adjust a little" cautioned Chan.
They both began to move in you leaving you hoarse and breathless, Chan lifting his pelvis and pounding your pussy while Hyunjin buried himself into you, they started slow but their pace gradually increased, leaving you with the most unique experience you were ever going to forget. Chan held you firmly by the hips and Hyunjin squeezed your right buttock with his hand while another hand played naughtily with your breasts.
Then you looked at the blond boyâs genital area, his stubble pubic area with tiny freckles on it, you were transfixed, thinking how uniquely beautiful Lee Felix was, you looked into his eyes before taking his cock and did your best to please him while two of your holes were being completely filled and used.
Your movements on his cock were imperfect due to the constant pounding of Chan and Hyunjin against your body that was driving you crazy. But Felix didn't stop panting, he loved it, he stroked your hair more delicately to how Hyunjin took you a few moments ago. You felt dirty, used and aroused, all your possible entrances occupied and each of them dripping in some fluids, your cheeks were shiny from the little tears shed. You were on the verge of collapse again, once again, your body could no longer hold it in.
On the other hand, Minho smiled happily, happy that lust won on that rainy night, he was in glee at the dirty image of your little body destroyed among men, he was as happy and excited as a young hormonal boy discovering his favorite porn. He was happy to have been able to fulfill your fantasies.
Chan babbled things that left you in the clouds, the moans of the three of them set fire inside you and the situation again seemed like a dream, a very dirty one.
Each of the best friends were enjoying it like they had never experienced sex before, everything was full of lust and passion, a sweet young woman at the beck and call of the pleasures and dark fantasies of men in search of forbidden sansations.
You pulled Felixâs cock out as you felt it quiver in your mouth and happily let him cum on your tongue. You became somewhat foolishly confused letting yourself be carried away by Chan and Hyunjinâs thrusts and whimpered again letting yourself release in the most intense and long lasting orgasm. You wanted to collapse in surrender, but both men continued on you some more until moaning and cumming hard inside you.
âGood girl-â Chan mumbled.
âFuck, sheâs full of cum nowâ Hyunjin smiled happily.
They both pulled out of you to contemplate the collapse of your twitching muscles expelling their glistening semen.
You finally felt yourself breathing, you thought you had tachycardia, you were out of your senses waiting to recover. You saw Minho approach you, again with his cock sheltered in his pants, with a calm expression and suddenly he carried your weak and naked body in his strong arms, you breathed in his scent and saw him with some embarrassment with your already flustered face.
âYou did very well my princess. I love youâ he whispered and gave you a tender kiss on your forehead, âDo you want to try something new tomorrow?â
Your boyfriend carried your exhausted body to the warm bathtub that he had already prepared, taking care of you after the unexpected night you had.
ŕšŕŁâŕšŕŁâ¸á¨â â・°
The next morning you didn't know how to act. It was strange, but the first thing you saw when you came downstairs were Minho's other friends at the entrance, Yang Jeongin, Kim Seungmin, Han Jisung and Seo Changbin. You greeted them shyly with a smile, as it was obvious what awaited you next as soon as night fell.
You went to the kitchen, where you heard voices, finding the men who saw you naked and vulnerable a couple of hours ago, the same ones responsible for each of your sighs and pleasure that crazy, rainy night. Everyone sat down to breakfast but it was obvious that the main course they wanted was you right now.
Chan, Hyunjin and Felix left in the afternoon, confusing you, but you quickly realized it was someone else's turn. None of them wanted to lose you from the spotlight, but just four of them got away with it.
Just when you were alone, in the quiet of the balcony reading a book, not paying attention and with your mind spinning trying to process what the fuck was going on; Minho went with Chan to buy you some birth control pills at the town pharmacy because you had forgotten yours and that was the perfect time for the four of them to take you and lure you into a little game.
They told Minho before they left you, âWe'll take care of her.â Minho wasn't stupid and knew of the high probability that they would end up fucking you without him being there, which annoyed the hell out of him, but he would see a way to arrange it, that night.
âWant to play baseball?â
That sentence from Seungmin was a total lie and you knew it, still you followed him into the woods, in an area far away from the house, not only him, but the three other guys followed him too.
âShit, Seungmin, do you know where we are?â mentioned Jisung annoyed.
Seungmin innocently looked around and stopped in his tracks.
âThis is the place.â
Everyone remained silent.
âOh no, we're lost,â Jeongin added dejectedly in jest.
The four of them watched you, again with leering and hungry looks, you wondered for a second... why you had to follow them there, but it wasn't as if your legs were moving on their own.
âIsn't that right, little one? You're lost but you have the good fortune that four kind men will help you get home, only if you obey and thank us, or we could help each other.â
Your breath shortened, you understood Changbin's dirty game perfectly. You saw Jisung, Seungmin and Jeongin, then turned your focus back to the closeness of Changbin and his strong grip on your waist.
âAnd how will I ever be able to thank you?â
Changbin flashed a half smile, âJust be a good girl and obey our directions so you can get home.â
You nodded, âKiss Jisung, he's waiting for youâ he softly ordered you.
Jisung opened his eyes in fright once you approached him, surprised that he is the one you were going to initiate with. You kissed him, letting yourself be carried away by the sensations of other lips on yours and in the heat of things, the excitement and pleasure traveled fast in your bodies, you were being fucked by Seungmin and his long cock while doing your best to give a good blowjob to Jisung who was holding on to your body, as both of your hands were busy masturbating Changbin and Jeongin, whose long and nimble digits found a way to play with your clit.
It was a very different baseball game than how you thought.
But your actions had consequences. There you were, in a different pleasure session very distinct from last night, this time Minho was part of it, no longer being sweet and attentive to you, he was spanking your ass hard, forcing you to confess everything you did in the woods with his friends in the afternoon, until you were sore, your ass burning with pain and your eyes shining. His friends enjoyed the spectacle of the game of your pleasure and suffering.
âTake her, guysâ Minho said coldly and pushed your body, not so exaggerated but you didn't put up any kind of resistance so he almost threw you. Seungmin came closer to you,
âSee? You're nothing but just a fucking slut desperate for some sex. Isn't that so? Look how fucking needy you are.â
His words turned you on, it was the disdainful tone he used and the annoyed expression on his tender face, plus he suddenly started to finger you.
âShould we take turns...? I wanna fuck herâ Jisung commented somewhat confused causing Minho to let out an unexpected giggle.
âI'll go first.â
You sighed as you listened to Changbin and let him take your body to the couch, moaning at the pain in your ass at the slightest rub. He spread your legs apart and began to taste your center, rolling your eyes.
âYou're rewarding her that way and I think it was clear what a bad girl she wasâ Seungmin said.
Changbin pulled away from your pussy just at the sweetest moment, controlled your body with ease, turned your body quickly and started to fuck you hard making you squeal.
âRight, you're a little whoreâ Changbin moaned, spanking you harder on your already red and hurting ass.
You whimpered in pain but his thick cock felt so good around your walls.
âFuck you, Changbinâ Jeongin expressed somewhat frustrated.
Everyone took Jisung's idea, the next one inside you was Jeongin who pulled on your hair as he penetrated you in a delicious pace, the next one was Seungmin, who kept spanking your ass and his body slammed into yours at every deep thrust. And the last one was Jisung, he flipped your body as he fantasized about the movement of your tits while he fucked you hard, he was the one who left you the most breathless and the only one who managed to cum in you.
The others unloaded their cum on your chest as they vigorously pulled their cocks, making you feel dirty and humiliated, but it was something new that you liked.
ŕšŕŁâŕšŕŁ â¸ á¨â â・°
Sunday night was the high point of that crazy weekend that seemed to have no end. All it took was telling Minho:
âWhy did you split up your friends? On you-know-whatâŚâ
âI thought eight guys was absurd.â
âMaybe it's not at all.â
And there you were, naked with eight needy, stiff cocks eager for you. The best part, was the men who carried it. You adored seeing their distinct and attractive faces and bodies begging for you, from the sensations they were giving you.
This time all eight of them were naked, looking so intimidating waiting for the next move. You were a helpless little deer in the woods, surrounded and in the sights of hungry beasts.
Hyunjin was the first to approach you, putting on a show for his friends as his mouth feasted on your breasts and his hand worked fast on your core, then his hand focused mainly on your clit as Jeongin's fingers were sunk deep into you after Hyunjin had happily invited him.
You slowly watched the silhouette of everyone approaching between your blurred vision due to the high level of libido in you and your body trembled in excitement, trying to think in what way they would make your body enough for each of them.
You were still in awe, not understanding the reason that brought you there, but just enjoying and letting yourself be carried away by the lust of the moment. But you had no idea that it was all caused by the domino effect of Minho's curiosity that led him to read your diary that night.
ęˇęŚď¸śęˇęŚď¸ś ๠࣠âęˇęŚ ęˇęŚď¸śęˇęŚď¸ś ๠࣠âęˇęŚ
đTAGLIST: @rylea08 @hann1bee @iovecb97 @armystay89 @lolareadsimagines @lailac13 @ayyonoona @do-you-remember-summer-127 @wildtokay @korthbum @oddracha @hyune-sssne @velvetmoonlght @shadowhunterathene @compersian @binniesbabe @strayywayy @mallielovssyou @isabel-018
lmk if u want to be added for more kinktober, or if i omitted u oopsi, and pls have an age indicator! also I canât tag some u :p but thereâs ur username w luv
pairing: hyunjin x afab!reader
genre: smut, fluff
synopsis: you wake up craving your boyfriend.
wc: 1.3k
warnings: oral (m), somnophilia, unprotected sex, creampie
a/n: i usually don't do requests, but an anonie sent in an ask for their birthday and i wanted to write something for them, if you're reading this i hope you like it and it's what you wantedđŤśđť happy bdayđ
~masterlist
The warmness of the sun was peeking through your curtains, warming you up even further than you already were.
With all the blankets thrown over you and the warm body pressing against your backside, you were more than comfortable.
Your lovely boyfriend finally had a few days off and he wanted to spend them attached to your hip, which of course you were excited about.
As you were slowly waking up, your eyes still closed, the familiar smell of you and Hyunjin was enveloping your senses and making you tingle.
Hyunjin had his arms around you, his hand on your breast of course, 'for emotional support', as he'd say and you pushed back into him, your core throbbing with want.
You listened to his slow deep breaths, realizing he was fast asleep, not moving a muscle but still as you wiggled your ass against his crotch, you could feel him getting hard, his cock pressing against you.
Arousal pooled on your panties, waves of hotness running over your body, you were needier than ever.
You managed to slither out of his arms somehow (after lots of struggling because he didn't want to let go of you), turning towards him as he grunted a little, smacking his lips before continuing to sleep.
Perfect, you thought, your eyes raking all over his frame, he looked so beautiful, angelic even, a vision of everything you love right there in your bed.
You didn't want to waste much time as you felt impatient, your hand reaching out for his bulge as you grabbed it gently, palming him for a few moments.
Hyunjin moaned in his sleep, pushing up into you without even realizing it.
You hooked your fingers in his boxers and slid them down, his cock slapping against his abdomen, hot and heavy, so delicious just for you.
You leaned in as you wrapped your fingers around the base, your tongue darting out to pick up the pre cum oozing out of his tip.
The salty liquid woke your taste buds up, spurring you on as you started swirling your tongue around his head.
Hyunjin's breathing became ragged but he was still asleep, his fingers twitching by his side as you played with your tongue, dipping it into his slit and down his sensitive underside.
Hyunjin's legs trembled as you wrapped your lips around the tip, sucking on it, your free hand fondling his balls.
"Mm... ah!" he moaned, jolting into you when you squeezed him, slowly taking more of his length in.
His hips moved involuntarily, lifting up to meet you half away as you started sucking on him slowly, the tip of your tongue running over the prominent vein gracing his entire length.
"L-love..." he was waking up now, blinking before looking down at you with a mix of lust and confusion that almost made you laugh, but he was too deep inside your mouth so you just hummed around him.
"Oh! That feels good." his head fell back into the pillow, his voice deep and laced with sleep, his hair a mess around his face which was now twisted in pleasure as you started bobbing your head faster.
"Fuck, darling!" he whined, his hand tangling in your hair as you kept taking him in, the tip of his cock hitting the back of your throat, making your eyes water but it only made you even more hungry to have him inside you.
You lifted off of him and he whimpered, looking at you like he was completely lost in you and the pleasure you were giving him, his brain still in the state of sleep.
"I need you, Jinnie." you slid your shirt off, before hooking your fingers in your panties.
"I'm right here baby." he said, lifting up but you pushed him down with your hand on his chest.
"Lay back, lover." you smirked at him and he groaned, his head hitting the pillow once again.
Tossing your panties somewhere behind you, you threw your leg over him, grabbing his cock and running it over your wet folds.
"Ah please, put it in." Hyunjin whines, hot and bothered from the way you woke him up.
You moan in response, slowly sinking down on his cock, the stretch is always delicious as you take him in all the way until his tip kisses your cervix and you sit on him, circling your hips a little to adjust.
Hyunjin's eyes roll back, his hands on your thighs as he grips the flesh.
You start to slowly move your hips, lifting up only a little and Hyunjin is already a moaning mess, his eyes falling down as he stares at the place where the two of you are connected.
He looks mesmerized as you fuck yourself on him, his big hands running all over your thighs to your waist and up to your breasts as he squeezes them, playing with your perky nipples.
Your eyes flutter closed as you lose yourself in the feeling of Hyunjin filling you up perfectly, his cock stretching you just right and touching you in all the right places, like it was made just for you.
You start fucking on him harder, lifting up more as your juices coat his length and drip down into his trimmed bush, you keep taking him in deeper as your hips smack down on his deliciously.
Hyunjin groans, his eyes shut tight, brows furrowed, his middle lifting up into yours, meeting your movement as his skin glistens with sweat.
You look down as you keep rocking on him, your eyes caught on the little hairs sticking to his sweaty forehead, the way his eyelashes lay on his skin, the way he keeps licking and biting at his lips, little moans and gasps of pleasure leaving them.
Your eyes fall to his neck, his adam's apple bobbing up and down as he swallows and you clench around him, making him whine.
Hyunjin opens his eyes and looks at you, almost crossed eyed from the pleasure and something burns inside his soul when he sees the way your eyes travel all over his body, the way you fuck on him, taking him so well, your titties bouncing with every movement.
He grips your hips and starts fucking up into you harder, the bed creaking under you and you almost fall apart when he starts abusing your hole like that.
A string of loud moans and curses leave your lips as you become putty in his hold, your pussy clenching around him, his pelvis stimulating your clit as it keeps rubbing against him.
You cry out as you come, squirting on him with tears of pleasure gathering in your eyes and Hyunjin groans, fucking up into you hard twice before you feel his cock twitch followed by hot spurts of cum filling you up to the brim.
You whine, riding out your high as you keep moving against him, milking him dry.
"B-baby..." Hyunjin whimpers, his whole body shuddering against the bed and you lean down to capture his lips in a passionate, loving kiss.
You lay on top of him as he slips out, and you can feel his cum seeping out of your fucked out pussy, both of you wet but you don't care, you need to be close to each other.
His arms wrap around you as he gently caresses your hair, carding his fingers through it, leaving little kisses on your head.
You listen to his heartbeat, almost falling asleep against him until he giggles.
"What's gotten into you? Not that I'm complaining, just curious." Hyunjin smiles cutely as you look up at him.
"I just needed you." you pout and he chuckles again.
"My sweet girl. You can take me whenever you need me." he grabs your face gently, guiding you to his lips. "I love you."
"I love you so much, Jinnie." you mumble against his lips.
"That was the best way to wake me up, but tomorrow morning I'm returning the favor." he smirks and you laugh happily, kissing him again.
You're in no hurry to get up, even if you need to wash up and eat because stealing as many moments as you can with Hyunjin is more meaningful than anything.
~taglist: @moonchild9350 @janepg @velvetmoonlght @hwanghyunjinismybae @jehhskz @laylasbunbunny @jeonginslefthand @porangporangmeong @laughatdanger @sapphirewaves @simpforleeknaur @s3ungm1nxxl0ve @painterhyunjin @starlost-mochi-x @saintcosette @ooshyana
ââ .⌠content warning : SMUT! MDI!!! fem!reader; kinda angst; mild burnout; miscommunication; light argument; explicit sex;
âŽâË pairing: idol seungmin Ă fem!reader
âŽâË word count: 2,1k
âŽâË synopsis: âHe shuts you out. You show up anyway. Tension snaps, words cut, and then it's just hands, mouths, desperation â because silence never kept you from choosing him.â
âŽâË A/N: heyy!! I personally didn't like this one â cause I hate writing short ones â I just wanted to post something so the blog doesn't ""die"". if you have some requests or thoughts you want to share, please feel free to send me a message and lmk what you think. don't forget to like and reblog it!! xox ૮ ⤠⤠ŕžŕ˝˛á
The lights in the apartment clock flashed 00:42 AM. I sat curled up on the couch, my phone screen glowing in my palm as I stared at the latest message I had sent him.
No response. Again. I had already double-checked if the messages were delivered. They were.
I sighed and typed another one, shorter this time.
[00:42 AM] Y/N: Are you still at the studio?
[00:56 AM] Y/N: Seungmin?
[01:09 AM] Y/N: Do you at least ate?
Still nothing.
My lips pressed into a thin line. I tapped on Chanâs name instead and sent a quick text:
[01:14 AM] Y/N â Chan: Is Seungmin still at the company?
The reply came almost instantly.
[01:14 AM] Chan: Yup. Still in the recording booth.
[01:15 AM] Chan: Heâs arguing with himself about how his vocals suck.
[01:15 AM] Chan: You should probably come take him home before he erases the whole track.
My jaw tightened, fingers clenching around the phone. This wasnât the first time. I tossed a hoodie over my tank top, grabbed my keys, and headed out.
The city passed like a blur outside the window as I drove, hands tight on the steering wheel, jaw clenched. Maybe this was insane. Maybe he just needed space. Maybe I was overreacting. But I knew him. And if there was one thing Seungmin was good at, it was pretending he was fine when he wasnât.
The building was mostly empty at that hour, the distant hum of ventilation systems the only sound as I made my way through the halls. When I reached the studio, the door was slightly ajar, a soft trail of Seungminâs voice leaking through.
Chan was in the producerâs chair, arms folded, head leaning back like he was halfway to sleep. He turned when he heard the door creak. His eyebrows rose. âWow. He really pushed you, huh?â
I dropped my bag onto the couch with more force than necessary. âHeâs not answering me. Again.â
Chan shrugged with a tired smile. âHeâs locked in perfectionist mode. Keeps saying his tone sounds wrong. Iâve told him to stop at least four times. He argued. I gave up.â
I crossed my arms. âIs he eating?â
âNo. Heâs eating self-hatred and... vocal fry.â That earned a half-smirk from me.
Chan stood, slinging his jacket over one shoulder. âHe might listen to you, though. I mean... if the pissed-off girlfriend look doesnât make him flinch, I donât know what will.â
I narrowed my eyes. âCoward.â
âCorrect.â he said, grinning as he walked to the door. âGood luck. Donât destroy any equipment.â
When the door clicked shut behind him, I finally turned to the booth. Seungmin was inside, headphones on, replaying the same take, muttering under his breath as he adjusted the mic. He hadnât noticed me yet. I moved closer to the glass, arms folded.
Eventually, he turnedâand froze. Our eyes locked. He blinked, surprised, pulling off his headphones. I didnât wait for an invitation. I opened the booth door and stepped in.
âWhat are you doing here?â he asked, voice rough. Seungmin blinked, pulling the headphones off. âItâs late.â
âYeah. No shit.â I stepped further in. âDid you plan on ignoring me until morning orâŚ?â
He sighed, rubbing the bridge of his nose. âI didnât mean to. Iâve just been workingââ
âYou always say that.â My voice cracked, just barely. âI get it, Min. You love what you do. But Iâm not just some⌠background character in your day.â
A beat passed.
âI just... needed to get this right.â he muttered.
âYouâve been doing this for days. Skipping meals. Coming home after Iâve fallen asleep. Acting like I donât exist.â His jaw clenched. âYou think Iâm mad because youâre working? Iâm mad because you wonât let me in.â He didnât answer. âYou donât have to carry everything by yourself, Seungmin. Not when Iâm right here.â
He exhaled slowly, voice strained. âI didnât want to worry you.â
âYeah well, too late for that.â
He looked at me, finally meeting my eyes. And for a second, he looked smaller. Tired. Vulnerable. âIâm sorry.â he said. âFor shutting you out. For making you feel like you donât matter. You do. More than anything.â
I softened, stepping closer. âIâm sorry too. For making you think you canât fall apart in front of me.â
He opened his mouth like he wanted to say something more, but the words didnât come.
âLet me hear it.â I said. He hesitated, then pressed play. The recording played softly in the background. His voice filled the boothâraw, imperfect, beautiful. I didnât look at the monitor. I watched him. When it ended, silence hung between us.
âYou sound like you mean every word.â I said. âIt's good. Better even.â
He let out a shaky laugh. âYou always say that.â
I reached up, brushing her fingers against his cheek. âBecause it's always true. Thatâs the curse of caring too much.â
He leaned into my touch without thinking.
âI missed you.â I whispered.
âIâve been here.â
âNot really.â
He looked at me again â really looked this time â and everything about him softened.
âIâm sorry.â he said quietly. âFor not replying. I didnât mean to make you feel like I wasnât listening.â
I stepped forward, my voice lower now. âSorry if I made you feel like youâre never doing enough. Thatâs not what I think. Thatâs never what I think.â The tension in his shoulders. The tired edge in his voice. I leaned in, closing the space between us slowly, giving him time to stop me. He didnât.
Our lips met â slow and deliberate, like we were savoring something we werenât sure weâd be allowed to taste again. There was nothing rushed about it. It was all breath and longing and the echo of weeks spent in silence. His mouth moved against mine like a silent apology, and I kissed him back like I wanted to undo every minute of distance with nothing but my lips.
The way he touched me wasnât hungry at first âit was careful. Like I was glass. Like he was afraid Iâd shatter and disappear. His hands rested at my waist before sliding up, tentative, brushing under the hem of my hoodie. The heat of his palms made my skin jump, and I gasped into his mouth when his thumbs grazed my ribs.
I pulled him closer, fingers threading into his hair, nails scratching lightly against his scalp. His soft groan vibrated through me. It was the kind of sound you only make when something feels too good to be real.
And it did feel unreal.
The studio was quiet, lit only by the soft glow from the control board. The world outside didnât exist anymore. Just me, him, and the months of tension unraveling with every brush of skin.
He broke the kiss first, breathing hard. âYou should go home.â he whispered â but his arms tightened around me like he couldnât bear the thought of letting go.
âNot happening.â I murmured, my lips ghosting across his jaw. âYou donât get to shut down and pretend I donât exist just because youâre scared.â
His eyes fluttered shut, like he was fighting something heavy inside him. âIâve been so fucking lost lately.â
âThen let me find you.â I pulled his shirt over his head and tossed it somewhere behind us. My hands moved automatically, relearning himâhis collarbones, the heat of his chest, the slight tremble in his stomach when my fingers dragged down his abs. His breathing hitched.
âYouâre shaking.â I said quietly.
âI havenât touched you in weeks.â he replied, voice wrecked. âIâve been thinking about this every damn night.â
My hoodie was next. He peeled it off slowly, reverently, like each inch of skin he uncovered was sacred. When he kissed my shoulder â just below my collarbone â I felt my knees weaken. Then he looked up, eyes dark, lips parted. âI donât remember how to take it slow.â
âYou donât have to.â
I pressed my body to his, grinding slowly against the bulge in his jeans. He cursed under his breath, gripping my hips hard enough to bruise. When he kissed me again, it was messy and breathless. No more restraint â just weeks of built-up tension crashing into us like a wave.
He backed me toward the padded bench, lips never leaving mine, hands everywhere â waist, hips, the underside of my breasts. He pushed me down gently, then stood between my legs, looking down at me like I was some beautiful secret he didnât know how to deserve.
âYouâre so fucking beautiful.â he whispered, almost angry with himself for not saying it sooner.
He kissed his way down my bodyâhot, open-mouthed kisses on my chest, my stomach, the insides of my thighs. When he pulled my underwear down with his teeth, I thought I might combust right there.
He looked up at me from between my legs, eyes smoldering. âLet me taste you.â
I barely had time to nod before his tongue slid over me â slow, firm, deliberate. My hips bucked involuntarily, and he moaned into me like the taste alone was enough to undo him.
His tongue worked me open with practiced easeâ lapping, teasing, circling my clit just right before sliding two fingers inside me. I gripped the edge of the bench, gasping, back arching as he pushed deeper, curling his fingers until I saw stars.
âSeungminâfuckâdonât stopââ
âIâm not going anywhere.â he growled against me. âYouâre shaking so pretty for me.â
And I was â legs trembling, breath ragged, vision blurring. He kept going, steady and relentless, until my orgasm hit me hard. I cried out, fingers tangled in his hair, thighs clamping around him as I came with a force that made the world tilt sideways.
He didnât stop until I was panting, sensitive, trying to push him away with shaky hands.
Then he stood, wiping his mouth, looking thoroughly wrecked â and incredibly proud.
âMy turn.â I said, breathless.
I pulled him down by the waistband of his jeans, undoing the button with slow, teasing fingers. His cock sprang free, thick and flushed, and when I wrapped my hand around him, he hissed through his teeth.
âYouâre killing me.â
âYou like it.â
âToo much.â
I stroked him slowly, dragging my thumb over the head, watching his jaw clench and his eyes flutter shut. When he looked down at me, his control was visibly cracking. âTurn around.â
I blinked. âWhat?â
âBench.â he said, voice low and dangerous. âHands on the bench. I need you.â
The words made heat pool in my stomach. I did as he saidâbent over the bench, back arched, looking over my shoulder at him.
He lined himself up behind me, running the head of his cock through my folds. âYouâre dripping,â he muttered. âFuck. You feel ready?â
âDonât make me beg.â
He slid in slowly â inch by inch until he was fully seated inside me. We both groaned. My hands clenched the edge of the bench as he pulled out halfway, then slammed back in, making the whole booth shake.
âI missed you.â he rasped against my ear.
âShut up and keep fucking me.â
He obeyed, thrusts hard and deep, filling me completely. The sound of skin on skin, his breath in my ear, the ragged moans he tried to hold backâit was too much. And not enough.
I pushed back against him, meeting every thrust, panting his name between gasps. One of his hands slid under me, fingers finding my clit again. I jolted. âOh my god â Seungmin â â
âCome again for me, baby,â he growled. âI want to feel you fall apart.â
And I did. Harder than before. My vision went white, body clenching around him, drawing him deeper. He cursed loudly, fucking me through it, and moments later, he stilled â burying himself deep as he came with a broken gasp, his chest pressed to my back.
We stayed like that for a long time, breathing in sync, sweat cooling on our skin. He kissed my shoulder again, softer this time. More tender than desperate.
âYou okay?â he whispered.
I nodded, twisting just enough to see him. âThat was... good.â
He pulled me into his arms, tucking me against his chest like he couldnât stand the thought of space between us. We stayed like that, still tangled, breathing each other in.
Eventually, I smiled. âI guess I really did have to come get you.â
He huffed a quiet laugh. âYeah. Please keep doing that.â
I kissed him again, softer this time, and in the quiet hum of the booth, it felt like the rest of the world could wait.
Fem!Reader x Kim Seungmin
Summary: You and Seungmin are roommates and he goes wandering in your room looking for something but ends up finding something else and getting aroused.
Warnings: accidental stimulation, masturbation, edging, hair grabbing, oral (Male receiving), sort of face fucking, you help him masturbate, he gets embarrassed, Seungmin whimpers, He doesn't know how to contain it, lmk if I missed anything else!
Word count: 1.1k
A/N: This one was recommended! I really hope y'all like this one as well. I'm gonna try to post as often as I can but I really don't have a great scheduleđ. This one is also kinda short I apologize.Iâll have another one soon hopefully đŤś.
You and Seungmin have been roommates for almost a year, so you've learned each other's schedules. You work from 8-4, and Seungmin stays home to do his online courses.
Seungmin tends to look for things in your room because he is always home and gets bored, wanting a reason to wander around the apartment.
He doesn't do this often, but this time when he did, he found something that is not usually left out for anyone to see, considering how tidy you are.
Seungmin found himself in need of something to write on and he knew that you had a few sketchbooks that you wouldn't mind him using.
He found what he was looking for but he also found your panties on the floor of your room. It was on the side of your bed laid out for him to see, it's like you wanted him to see it.
It's not like he meant to see it or, better yet get a boner from it. He doesn't know why it's happening but he doesn't hate it. The image of you taking off your panties pops up in his head as he looks at your underwear.
He couldn't help himself from getting off on your panties. He pressed his hip against the side of your bed, his back following, sliding down until his knees reached his chest.
After getting on the ground he spread his legs out, enough for him to have space to comfortably touch himself. Then he pulls his shorts down enough for his cock to be out.
Seungmin reached his hands to the bottom of his stomach, tucking his fingers under his boxers and grabbing his hard cock, palming it gently while staring at where your pussy had been at one point.
He reaches down and grabs his shirt, bringing it to his mouth so it won't be in his way. Seungmin starts to slowly stroke himself as he reaches for your panties. He can't help himself, he doesn't know why he's doing this, his body is just moving on its own.
His strokes start to become harsher, seeing your panties just did something to him. Knowing that your pussy was once there he couldn't help but bring them up to his face, imagining him being in your pussy. Eating you out so good to the point you whimper out his name.
His dick twitches in his hand from the thought. He uses some of his pre-cum to help him pump his hard cock.
âFuck Y/Nâ
He whispered for you, groaning out for you. He was close to cumming but didn't want to yet. He let go of himself, watching his dick twitch.
After a few seconds, he starts to stroke himself again, his whole body flinching as he gently touches himself. He brings your panties down to his dick, teasing himself with them.
Seungmin slowly puts your panties around his hard dick, his whole body reacting to every touch. He felt himself around you, stroking himself with you. He wanted you so bad.
All while he was doing this he didn't hear the front door open. He had been edging himself on for so long that he didn't even realize the time. You've been home for a while.
He lets out more whimpers not knowing youâre home. You could hear him calling out for you, you thought maybe something had happened so you slowly walked up to your door.
You opened the door just enough for you to see inside. Seungmin didnât even look up at the door as you peeked through it. The image of him was so fucking hot.
He was sitting on the side of your bed, his shirt in his mouth, his shorts down to his knees, his cock in his hand.
Seeing your panties in his hand shocked you. It made you want to help him, he felt like this because of you right?
You open the door gently, watching seungmin glance up at you with begging eyes. He realized what he was doing for a second and got embarrassed, trying to cover himself.
âI uh.. Its not what it looks like y/n! I didn't mean to IâŚit just kinda happened..â
You don't say anything and start to walk up to him. You look into his lustful eyes, you could tell he wanted you to do anything to him.
Looking down at his cock you could see so much cum leaking from him. He was a mess for you, your panties now covered in his cum.
âSeungmin, let me help you okay?â
He nods his head in approval as you look down at his dick watching him twitch. You put your hand on his hips rubbing around his base before touching his cock.
His hips buck into your touch, whimpers slipping out from his mouth as you tease him. You didn't know that he had already been on the edge of cumming for a while.
You stroke him a few times before leaning forward to take him in your mouth. His hips bucking every time you move your head.
He grabs a fist full of your hair as you suck him off. His hips start to buck forward and fuck into your face, his grip tightening on your hair, whimpers flowing from his mouth.
You bring your head back up, gathering up spit in your mouth to help you stroke his dick again.
âNgh y/n pleaseâ
His begging made you want more than just what you were giving him, but it was already late and the two of you had things to do tomorrow.
âCan you cum in my mouth seungmin? Please?â
He nods his head yes as you go down on him again, taking in his full length. His hand pushed your head down the closer he came to cumming down your throat.
With a few final thrusts into your face, he came down your throat, painting your mouth white. You moan into his thrust causing him to whimper from the vibrations.
You look up at him as you bring yourself up to his view, allowing him to watch you swallow his cum.
âFuck y/nâŚ.your such a good girl for meâŚâ
You smile at him as he strokes your face, both of you trying to catch your breath from what just happened.
âMaybe we could do this again seungmin, but maybe let me help you more..â
âFuck yes y/nâ
After a while of catching your breath, you get up to get a towel to help clean up yourself and him. He kept apologizing about what happened saying how he didn't know why it happened, but you didn't mind it at all. After all, you've been waiting for this moment.
Hello my friends and supporters of my campaign to save my life and the lives of my beautiful family.â¤đĽş
I am Dr. Mohammad Al-Deeb, an ER physician at Al-Shifa Hospital in the northern Gaza Strip đŠşđЏđ
before the brutal war forced us to leave our homes, memories, and workplaces, which have now become rubble after years of hard work to build them.đđ°
Our beautiful home, filled with cherished memories, holds in every corner the story of my childhood and youthđ, which my siblings and I dedicated our lives to building.đŞđŁ
Now, I am displaced in the southern part of Wadi GazađŞ,
living with my family in a small tent that lacks even the most basic necessities of lifeâ
I
I ask for your continued support, as I have always relied on it.
Sar-
Dr. Mohammad Al-Deeb from Gaza.
Our campaign is vetted by
@90-ghost
@mangocheesecakes
@sayruq
@el-shab-hussein
@nabulsi (number 212)
Please help me by publishing my story đĽšđđť